- The Project Gutenberg EBook of Revelations of Divine Love Recorded by
- Julian, Anchoress at Norwich, by Julian
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
- the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
- www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
- to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
- Title: Revelations of Divine Love Recorded by Julian, Anchoress at Norwich
- Author: Julian
- Illustrator: Phoebe Anna Traquair
- Translator: Grace Warrack
- Release Date: September 2, 2016 [EBook #52958]
- Language: English
- *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE ***
- Produced by Clare Graham & Marc D'Hooghe at Free Literature
- (online soon in an extended version, alo linking to free
- sources for education worldwide ... MOOC's, educational
- materials,...) Images generously made available by the
- Internet Archive.
- REVELATIONS
- of DIVINE LOVE
- Recorded by JULIAN,
- Anchoress at _NORWICH_
- ANNO DOMINI 1373
- _In lumine tuo videbimus lumen_
- A version from the MS.
- in the BRITISH MUSEUM
- edited by
- GRACE WARRACK
- Methuen & Company
- 36 Essex Street Strand
- London
- 1901
- DOMINI, REFUGIUM FACTUS ES NOBIS, A GENERATIONE IN GENERATIONEM.
- RESPICE IN SERVOS TUOS, ET IN OPERA TUA: ET DIRIGE FILIOS EORUM.
- ET SIT SPLENDOR DOMINI DEI NOSTRI SUPER NOS, ET OPERA MANUUM
- NOSTRARUM DIRIGE SUPER NOS: ET OPUS MANUUM NOSTRARUM DIRIGE.
- "Truth seeth God, and Wisdom beholdeth God, and of these two cometh the
- third: that is a holy, marvelling delight in God; which is Love."
- CONTENTS
- PAGE
- I.
- NOTES ON MANUSCRIPTS AND EDITIONS OF THIS BOOK. xi
- II.
- NOTE AS TO TWO JULIANS. xv
- III.
- INTRODUCTION:--
- Part I. The Lady Julian. xvii
- Part II. The Manner of the Book. xxxiii
- Part III. The Theme of the Book. lv
- IV.
- "REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE":--
- (_editorial account_)
- i.
- A List of Contents, called "A Particular of the
- Chapters". 1
- ii.-iii.
- Autobiographical. 3
- iv.-ix.
- _The First Revelation_: The Trinity is shewn,
- through the Suffering of Christ, as Goodness,
- or Love all-working. 8
- x.
- _The Second Revelation_: Man's Sight of God's
- Love is but partial because of sin's darkness. 21
- xi.
- _The Third Revelation_: All Being is Being of
- God and is good: Sin is no Being. 26
- xii.
- _The Fourth Revelation_: The stain of sin through
- lacking of human love is cleared away by the
- Death of Christ in His Love. 29
- xiii.
- _The Fifth Revelation_: By Love's Sacrifice,
- in Christ, the evil suffered, for Love's
- Increase, to rise, is overcome for ever. 30
- xiv.
- _The Sixth Revelation_: The travail of Man
- against evil on earth is a glory accepted
- by Love in Heaven. 33
- xv.
- _The Seventh Revelation:_ It is of God's Will,
- for our learning, that on earth we change between
- joy of light and pain of darkness. 34
- xvi.-xxi.
- _The Eighth Revelation:_ Of the oneness
- of God and Man in the Passion of Christ, through
- Compassion of the Creature with Christ and of
- Christ with the Creature. All compassion in men
- is Christ in men. 36
- xxii.-xxiii.
- _The Ninth Revelation_: Of the worshipful entering
- of Man's soul into the Joy of Love Divine in the
- Passion. 46
- xxiv.
- _The Tenth Revelation_: Of the thankful entering
- of the soul into the Peace of _the Endless Love_
- opened up for Man in the time of the Passion. 51
- xxv.
- _The Eleventh Revelation:_ Of Christ's Raising,
- Fulfilling Love to the souls of men, as beheld
- in the love between Him and His Mother. 52
- xxvi.
- _The Twelfth Revelation:_ All that the soul
- lives by and loves is God, through Christ. 54
- xxvii.-xl.
- _The Thirteenth Revelation:_ Man's finite love
- was suffered by Infinite Love to fail, that
- falling thus through sin into pain and death
- of darkness, the creature therein might more
- deeply know his need and more highly know, in
- its succouring strength, the Creator's Love,
- as the Saviour's; that so being raised, and for
- ever held clinging to that through the grace of
- the Holy Ghost, he might rise to fuller and
- higher and endless oneness with God. 55
- xli.-xliii.
- _The Fourteenth Revelation:_ Beginning on
- earth, Prayer makes the soul one with God. 84
- xliv.-lxiii.
- Regarding these Revelations and the Christian
- Life of Love's travail on earth against sin. 93
- lxiv.-lxv.
- _The Fifteenth Revelation_ (Closing): Of
- Love's Fulfilment in Heaven. 159
- lxvi.
- Autobiographical: The fall through frailty of
- nature, by self-regarding, into doubt of the
- Shewing of Love; the rescue by mercy; the
- assaying of faith and the overcoming by grace. 164
- lxvii.-lxviii.
- _The Sixteenth Revelation_ (Confirming): The
- Indwelling of God In the Soul, now and for ever.
- "_Thou shalt not be overcome._" 167
- lxix.
- Autobiographical: The second assaying of faith,
- through the horror of spiritual darkness; the
- overcoming by virtue of the Passion of Christ,
- with help from the Common Belief of the
- Christian Fellowship. 170
- lxx.-lxxxv.
- The Life of Faith is kept by Charity,
- led on by Hope 172
- lxxvi.
- The Meaning of the Whole. Of learning more on
- earth and In Heaven of the One thing taught
- in the Revelation: _the Endless Love_; in
- Which Life is everlasting. 201
- V.
- POSTSCRIPT
- BY AN EARLY TRANSCRIBER OF THE MANUSCRIPT. 204
- VI.
- GLOSSARY. 205
- _The Title-page is from a design by Phoebe Anna Traquair._
- NOTES ON MANUSCRIPTS AND EDITIONS
- This English book exists in two Manuscripts: No. 30 of the Bibliothèque
- Nationale, Paris (_Bibliotheca Bigotiana_, 388), and No. 2499 _Sloane_,
- in the British Museum.
- The Paris Manuscript is of the Sixteenth Century, the Sloane is in a
- Seventeenth Century handwriting; the English of the Fourteenth Century
- seems to be on the whole well preserved in both, especially perhaps in
- the later Manuscript, which must have been copied from one of mixed
- East Anglian and northern dialects. This manuscript has no title-page,
- and nothing is known as to its history. Delisle's catalogue of the
- _Biblioth. Bigot._ (1877) gives no particulars as to the acquisition of
- No. 388. The two versions may be compared in these sentences:--
- Chap. II., _Paris_ MS.: "This revelation was made to a Symple creature
- unlettyrde leving in deadly flesh the yer of our Lord a thousande and
- thre hundered and lxxiii the xiii Daie of May."
- _Sloane_: "These Revelations were shewed to a simple creature that
- cowde no letter the yeere of our Lord 1373 the xiij day of may."
- Chap. LI., _Paris_ MS.: "The colour of his face was feyer brown whygt
- with full semely countenaunce. his eyen were blakke most feyer and
- semely shewyng full of lovely pytte and within hym an heyward long
- and brode all full of endlesse hevynlynes. And the lovely lokyng that
- he lokyd on his servant contynually. And namely in his fallyng ÷ me
- thought it myght melt oure hartys for love. and brek them on twoo for
- Joy."
- _Sloane_: "The color of his face was faire browne, with ful semely
- features, his eyen were blak most faire and semely shewand ful of
- lovely pety and within him an heyward long and brode all full of endles
- hevyns, and the lovely lokeing that he loked upon his servant continuly
- and namely in his fallyng me thowte it myte molten our herts for love &
- bresten hem on to for joy."
- The Sloane MS. does not mention the writer of the book, but the copyist
- of the Paris version has, after the _Deo Gratias_ with which it ends,
- added or transcribed these words: _Explicit liber Revelationem Julyane
- anatorite_ [sic] _Norwyche cujus anime propicietur Deus_.
- Blomefield, in his _History of Norfolk_ (iv. p. 81), speaks of "an
- old vellum Manuscript, 36 pages of which contained an account of
- the visions, etc.," of the Lady Julian, anchoress at St. Julian's,
- Norwich, and quotes the title written by a contemporary: "Here es a
- Vision shewed by the godenes of God to a devoute Woman: and her name
- is Julian, that is recluse at Noryche, and yett is on life, Anno
- Domini mccccxlii. In the whilke Vision er fulle many comfortabyll
- words, and greatly styrrande to alle they that desyres to be Crystes
- Looverse"--greatly stirring to all that desire to be lovers of Christ.
- This Manuscript, possibly containing the writing of Julian herself,
- was in the possession of the Rev. Francis Peck (1692-1743). The
- original MSS. of that antiquarian writer went to Sir Thomas Cave, and
- ultimately to the British Museum, but his general library was sold in
- 1758 to Mr T. Payne (of Payne & Foss), bookseller, Strand, and this old
- Manuscript of the "Revelations," which has been sought for in vain in
- the catalogues of public collections, may perhaps have been bought and
- sold by him.[1] It may be extant in some private library.
- Tersteegen, who, in his _Auserlesene Beschreibungen Heiliger Seelen_,
- gives a long extract from Julian's book (vol. iii. p. 252, 3rd ed.
- 1784), mentions in his preface that he had seen "in the Library of the
- late Poiret" an old Manuscript of these Revelations. Pierre Poiret,
- author of several works on mystical theology, died in 1719 near Leyden,
- but the Manuscript has not found its way to the University there.
- Poiret himself refers thus to Julian and her book in his _Catalogus
- Auctorum Mysticorum_, giving to her name the asterisk denoting
- greatness: "_Julianae Matris Anachoretae, Revelationes de Amore Dei.
- Anglice. Theodidactae, profundae, ecstaticae._" (_Theologiae Pacificae
- itemque Mysticae_, p. 336. Amsterdam, 1702.)
- The earliest printed edition of Julian's book was prepared by the
- Benedictine Serenus de Cressy, and published in 1670 by permission of
- his ecclesiastical Superior, the Abbot of Lambspring, under the title
- of _Sixteen Revelations of Divine Love_. It agrees with the Manuscript
- now in Paris, but the readings that differ from the Sloane Manuscript
- are very few and are quite unimportant. This version of de Cressy's
- is in Seventeenth Century English with some archaic words, which are
- explained on the side margins; it was re-printed in 1843. A modernised
- version taken from the Sloane MS. was published, with a preface, by
- Henry Collins in 1877 (T. Richardson & Sons).
- These three, the only printed editions, are now all of great rarity.
- For the following version, the editor having transcribed the Sloane
- MS., divided its continuous lines into paragraphs, supplied to many
- words capital letters, and while following as far as possible the
- significance of the commas and occasional full stops of the original,
- endeavoured to make the meaning clearer by a more varied punctuation.
- As the book is designed for general use, modern spelling has been
- adopted, and most words entirely obsolete in speech have been rendered
- in modern English, though a few that seemed of special significance
- or charm have been retained. Archaic forms of construction have
- been almost invariably left as they are, without regard to modern
- grammatical usage. Occasionally a word has been underlined for the sake
- of clearness or as a help in preserving the measure of the original
- language, which in a modern version must lose a little in rhythm, by
- altered pronunciation and by the dropping of the termination "en" from
- verbs in the infinitive. Here and there a clause has been put within
- parentheses. The very few changes made in words that might have any
- bearing on theological or philosophical questions, any historical or
- personal significance in the presentment of Julian's view, are noted on
- the margin and in the Glossary. Where prepositions are used in a sense
- now obscure they have generally been left as they are (_e.g., of_ for
- _by_ or _with_), or have been added to rather than altered (_e.g., for_
- is rendered by the archaic but intelligible _for that_, rather than
- by _because_, and _of_ is amplified by words in square brackets, as
- [_by virtue_] _of_, [_out_] _of_ rather than changed into _through_ or
- _from_). The editor has desired to follow the rule of never omitting
- a word from the Manuscript, and of enclosing within square brackets
- the very few words added. It may be seen that these words do not alter
- the sense of the passage, but are interpolated with a view to bringing
- it out more clearly, in insignificant references (_e.g._ "in this
- [Shewing]"), and once or twice in a passage of special obscurity (see
- chap. xlv).
- [1] v. Nichol's _Literary Anecdotes_, vol. iii. p. 653.
- NOTE AS TO THE LADY JULIAN, ANCHORESS AT ST JULIAN'S, AND THE LADY
- JULIAN LAMPET, ANCHORESS AT CARROW
- In _Carrow Abbey_, by Walter Rye (privately printed, 1889), is given a
- list of Wills, in which the name of the Lady Julian Lampet frequently
- occurs as a legatee between the years 1427 (Will of Sir John Erpingham)
- and 1478 (Will of William Hallys). Comparing the Will of Hallys with
- that of Margaret Purdance, which was made in 1471 but not proved till
- 1483, and from which the name of Lady Julian Lampet as a legatee is
- stroked out, no doubt because of her death, we find evidence that this
- anchoress died between 1478 and 1483. As even the earlier of these
- dates was a hundred and thirty-six years after the birth of the writer
- of the "Revelations," who in May 1373 was over thirty years of age,
- the identity of the "Lady Julian, recluse at Norwich," with the Lady
- Julian Lampet, though it has naturally been suggested, is surely an
- impossibility. There were anchorages in the churchyards both of St
- Julian's, Conisford (which belonged to the nuns of Carrow in the sense
- of its revenues having been made over to them by King Stephen for the
- support of that Priory or "Abbey"), and of St Mary's, the Convent
- Church of the nuns. See the Will of Robert Pert--proved 1445--which
- left "to the anchoress of Carhowe 1s., to ditto at St Julian's 1s.,"
- and that of the Lady Isobel Morley, who in 1466 left bequests to "Dame
- Julian, anchoress at Carrow, and Dame Agnes, anchoress at St Julian's
- in Cunisford"--no doubt the same Dame Agnes that is mentioned by
- Blomefield as being at St Julian's in 1472. This Agnes may have been
- the immediate successor of Julian the writer of the "Revelations," who
- is spoken of as "yet in life"--as if in great age--in 1442, when she
- would be a hundred years old.
- Perhaps the almost invariable use of the surname of the Carrow
- Dame Julian (who was, no doubt, of the family of Sir Ralph
- Lampet--frequently mentioned by Blomefield and in the _Paston Letters_)
- may go to establish proof that there had been before her and in her
- earlier years of recluse life another anchoress Julian, who most likely
- had been educated at Carrow, but who lived as an anchoress at St
- Julian's, and was known simply as Dame or "the Lady" Julian.
- * * * * *
- From Blomefield's _History of Norfolk_, vol. iv. p. 524: "Carhoe or
- Carrow stands on a hill by the side of the river, about a furlong from
- Conisford or Southgates, and was always in the liberty of the City
- [of Norwich].... Here was an ancient Hospital or Nunnery, dedicated
- to Saint Mary and Saint John, to which King Stephen having given
- lands and meadows without the South-gate, Seyna and Lescelina, two of
- the sisters, in 1146 began the foundations of a new monastery called
- Kairo, Carrow, Car-hou, and sometimes Car-Dieu, which was dedicated to
- the Virgin Mary and Saint John, and consisted of a prioress and nine
- (afterwards twelve) Benedictine black nuns.... Their church was founded
- by King Stephen and was dedicated to the Blessed Virgin, and had a
- chapel of St John Baptist joined to its south side, and another of St
- Catherine to its north; there was also an anchorage by it, and in 1428
- Lady Julian Lampet was anchoress there." ... "This nunnery for many
- years had been a school or place of education for the young ladies of
- the chief families of the diocese, who boarded with and were educated
- by the nuns."
- From Dr Jessopp's _Visitations of the Diocese of Norwich_, 1492-1532,
- Introduction, p. xliv.: "The priory of Carrow had always enjoyed a good
- reputation, and the house had for long been a favourite retreat for the
- daughters of the Norwich citizens who desired to give themselves to a
- life of religious retirement."
- INTRODUCTION
- PART I
- THE LADY JULIAN
- _Beati pauperes spiritu: quoniam ipsorum est regnum coelorum_
- _S. Matth. v._ 3
- Very little is known of the outer life of the woman that nearly five
- hundred years ago left us this book.
- It is in connection with the old Church of St Julian in the parish of
- Conisford, outlying Norwich, that Julian is mentioned in Blomefield's
- _History of Norfolk_ (vol. iv. p. 81): "In the east part of the
- churchyard stood an anchorage in which an ankeress or recluse dwelt
- till the Dissolution, when the house was demolished, though the
- foundations may still be seen (1768). In 1393 Lady Julian, the ankeress
- here was a strict recluse, and had two servants to attend her in her
- old age. This woman was in these days esteemed one of the greatest
- holiness. In 1472 Dame Agnes was recluse here; in 1481, Dame Elizabeth
- Scott; in 1510, Lady Elizabeth; in 1524, Dame Agnes Edrygge."
- The little Church of St Julian (in use at this day) still keeps from
- Norman times its dark round tower of flint rubble, and still there
- are traces about its foundation of the anchorage built against its
- south-eastern wall. "This Church was founded," says the History of
- the County, "before the Conquest, and was given to the nuns of Carhoe
- (Carrow) by King Stephen, their founder; it hath a round tower and
- but one bell; the north porch and nave are tiled, and the chancel is
- thatched. There was an image of St Julian in a niche of the wall of
- the Church, in the Churchyard." Citing the record of a burial in "the
- churchyard of St Julian, the King and Confessor," Blomefield observes:
- "which shews that it was not dedicated to St Julian, the Bishop, nor St
- Julian, the Virgin."
- The only knowledge that we have directly from Julian as to any part
- of her history is given in her account of the time and manner in
- which the Revelation came, and of her condition before and during and
- after this special experience. She tells how on the 13th day of May,
- 1373,[1] the Revelation of Love was shewed to her, "a simple creature,
- unlettered," who had before this time made certain special prayers from
- out of her longing after more love to God and her trouble over the
- sight of man's sin and sorrow. She had come now, she mentions, to the
- age of thirty, for which she had in one of these prayers, desired to
- receive a greater consecration,--thinking, perhaps, of the year when
- the Carpenter's workshop was left by the Lord for wider ministry,--she
- was "thirty years old and an half." This would make her birth-date
- about the end of 1342, and the old Manuscript says that she "was yet in
- life" in 1442. Julian relates that the Fifteen consecutive "Shewings"
- lasted from about four o'clock till after nine of that same morning,
- that they were followed by only one other Shewing (given on the night
- of the next day), but that through later years the teaching of these
- Sixteen Shewings had been renewed and explained and enlarged by the
- more ordinary enlightenment and influences of "the same Spirit that
- shewed them." In this connection she speaks, in different chapters, of
- "fifteen years after and more," and of twenty years after, "save three
- months"; thus her book cannot have been finished before 1393.
- Of the circumstances in which the Revelations came, and of all matters
- connected with them, Julian gives a careful account, suggestive of
- great calmness and power of observation and reflection at the time,
- as well as of discriminating judgment and certitude afterwards. She
- describes the preliminary seven days' sickness, the cessation of all
- its pain during the earlier visions, in which she had spiritual
- sight of the Passion of Christ, and indeed during all the five hours'
- "special Shewing"; the return of her physical pain and mental distress
- and "dryness" of feeling when the vision closed; her falling into
- doubt as to whether she had not simply been delirious, her terrifying
- dream on the Friday night,--noting carefully that "this horrible
- Shewing" came in her sleep, "and so did none other"--none of the
- Sixteen Revelations of Love came thus. Then she tells how she was
- helped to overcome the dream-temptation to despair, and how on the
- following night another Revelation, conclusion and confirmation of
- all, was granted to strengthen her faith. Again her faith was assayed
- by a similar dream-appearance of fiends that seemed as it were to be
- mocking at all religion, and again she was delivered, overcoming by
- setting her eyes on the Cross and fastening her heart on God, and
- comforting her soul with speech of Christ's Passion (as she would have
- comforted another in like distress) and rehearsing the Faith of all
- the Church. It may be noted here that Julian when telling how she was
- given grace to awaken from the former of these troubled dreams, says,
- "anon all vanished away and I was brought to great rest and peace,
- without sickness of body or dread of conscience," and that nothing in
- the book gives any ground for supposing that she had less than ordinary
- health during the long and peaceful life wherein God "lengthened her
- patience." Rather it would seem that one so wholesome in mind, so
- happy in spirit, so wisely moderate, no doubt, in self-guidance, must
- have kept that general health that _she_ could not despise who speaks
- of God having "no disdain" to serve the body, for love of the soul, of
- how we are "soul and body clad in the Goodness of God," of how "God
- hath made waters plenteous in earth to our service and to our bodily
- ease,"[2] and of how Christ waiteth to minister to us His gifts of
- grace "unto the time that we be waxen and grown, our soul with our body
- and our body with our soul, either of them taking help of other, till
- we be brought unto stature, as nature worketh."[3]
- Julian mentions neither her name not her state in life; she is "the
- soul," the "poor" or "simple" soul that the Revelation was shewed
- to--"a simple creature," in herself, a mere "wretch," frail and of no
- account.
- Of her parentage and early home we know nothing: but perhaps her own
- exquisite picture of Motherhood--of its natural (its "kind") love and
- wisdom and knowledge--is taken partly from memory, with that of the
- kindly nurse, and the child, which by nature loveth the Mother and
- each of the other children, and of the training by Mother and Teacher
- until the child is brought up to "the Father's bliss" (lxi.-lxiii.).
- The title "Lady," "Dame" or "Madame" was commonly accorded to
- anchoresses, nuns, and others that had had education in a Convent.[4]
- Julian, no doubt, was of gentle birth, and she would probably be sent
- to the Convent of Carrow for her education. There she would receive
- from the Benedictine nuns the usual instruction in reading, writing,
- Latin, French, and fine needlework, and especially in that Common
- Christian Belief to which she was always in her faithful heart and
- steadfast will so loyal,--"the Common Teaching of Holy Church in which
- I was afore informed and grounded, and with all my will having in use
- and understanding" (xlvi.).
- It is most likely that Julian received at Carrow the consecration
- of a Benedictine nun; for it was usual, though not necessary, for
- anchoresses to belong to one or other of the Religious Orders.
- The more or less solitary life of the anchorite or hermit, the
- anchoress or recluse, had at this time, as earlier, many followers in
- the country parts and large towns of England. Few of the "reclusoria"
- or women's anchorholds were in the open country or forest-lands
- like those that we come upon in Medieval romances, but many churches
- of the villages and towns had attached to them a timber or stone
- "cell"--a little house of two or three rooms inhabited by a recluse who
- never left it, and one servant, or two, for errands and protection.
- Occasionally a little group of recluses lived together like those three
- young sisters of the Thirteenth Century for whom the _Ancren Riwle_,
- a Rule or Counsel for "Ancres," was at their own request composed.
- The recluse's chamber seems to have generally had three windows: one
- looking into the adjoining Church, so that she could take part in the
- Services there; another communicating with one of those rooms under
- the keeping of her "maidens," in which occasionally a guest might be
- entertained; and a third--the "parlour" window--opening to the outside,
- to which all might come that desired to speak with her. According to
- the _Ancren Riwle_ the covering-screen for this audience-window was
- a curtain of double cloth, black with a cross of white through which
- the sunshine would penetrate--sign of the Dayspring from on high.
- This screen could of course be drawn back when the recluse 'held a
- parliament' with any that came to her.[5]
- Before Julian passed from the sunny lawns and meadows of Carrow, along
- the road by the river and up the lane to the left by the gardens and
- orchards of the Coniston of that day, to the little Churchyard house
- that would hide so much from her eyes of outward beauty, and yet leave
- so much in its changeful perpetual quietude around her (great skies
- overhead like the ample heavenly garments of her vision "blue as azure
- most deep and fair"; little Speedwell's blue by the crannied wall of
- the Churchyard--_Veronika_, true Image, like the Saint's "Holy Vernacle
- at Rome") her vow[6] might be: "I offering yield myself to the divine
- Goodness[7] for service, in the order of anchorites: and I promise to
- continue in the service of God after the rule of that order, by divine
- grace and the counsel of the Church: and to shew canonical obedience to
- my ghostly fathers."
- The only reference that Julian makes to the life dedicated more
- especially to Contemplation is where she is speaking, as if from
- experience, of the temptation to despair because of falling oftentimes
- into the same sins, "especially into sloth and losing of time. For
- that is the beginning of sin, as to my sight,--and especially to the
- creatures that have given themselves to serve our Lord with inward
- beholding of His blessed Goodness."[8]
- "_One thing have I desired of the Lord, that will I seek after: that I
- may dwell in the house of the Lord all the days of my life, to behold
- the beauty of the Lord, and to enquire in His temple_"--His Sanctuary
- of the Church or of the soul. _That_ was her calling. She had heard the
- Voice that comes to the soul in Spring-time and calls to the Garden of
- lilies, and calls to the Garden of Olive-trees (where all the spices
- offered are in one Cup of Heavenly Wine): _"Surge, propera amica mea:
- jam enim Hyems transiit, imber ambiit et recessit. Surge, propera amica
- mea, speciosa mea, et veni." "Arise: let us go hence."[9] "For this is
- the natural yearnings of the soul by the touching of the Holy Ghost:
- God of Thy Goodness, give me Thyself, for Thou art enough to me; ...
- and if I ask anything that is less, ever me wanteth; but only in Thee I
- have all"_ (v.).
- "A soul that only fasteneth itself on to God with very trust, either
- by seeking or in beholding, it is the most worship that it may do to
- Him, as to my sight" (x.). "To enquire" and "to behold"--no doubt it
- was for these that Julian sought time and quiet. For she had urgent
- questionings and "stirrings" in her mind over "the great hurt that is
- come by sin to the creature"--"afore this time often I wondered why by
- the great foreseeing wisdom of God the beginning of sin was not letted"
- ("mourning and sorrow I made over it without reason and discretion");
- and also she was filled with desire for God: "the longing that I had to
- Him afore" (xxvii.).
- Moreover, this life to which Julian gave herself was to be a life of
- "meek continuant prayers" "for enabling" of herself in her weakness,
- and for help to others in all their needs. For thought and worship
- could only be held together by active prayer: the pitiful beholding
- of evil and pain and the joyful beholding of Goodness and Love would
- be at war, as it were, with each other, unless they were set at peace
- for the time by the prayer of intercession. And _that_ is the call of
- the loving soul, strong in its infant feebleness to wake the answering
- Revelation of Love to faith that "all shall be well," and that "all is
- well" and that when all are come up above and the whole is known, all
- shall be seen to be well, and to have been well through the time of
- tribulation and travail.
- "At some time in the day or night," says the _Ancren Riwle_,
- which Julian perhaps may have read, though as to such prayers her
- compassionate heart was its own director--"At some time in the day
- or night think upon and call to mind all who are sick and sorrowful,
- who suffer affliction and poverty, the pain which prisoners endure who
- lie heavily fettered with iron; think especially of the Christians who
- are amongst the heathen, some in prison, some in so great thralldom
- as is an ox or an ass; compassionate those who are under strong
- temptations; take thought of all men's sorrows, and sigh to our Lord
- that He may take care of them and have compassion and look upon them
- with a gracious eye; and if you have leisure, repeat this Psalm, _I
- have lifted up mine eyes. Paternoster. Return, O Lord, how long, and
- be intreated in favour of Thy servants: Let us pray._ 'Stretch forth,
- O Lord, to thy servants and to thy handmaids the right hand of thy
- heavenly aid, that they may seek thee with all their heart, and obtain
- what they worthily ask through Jesus Christ our Lord.'" Julian tells
- how in her thinking of sin and its hurt there passed before her sight
- all that Christ bore for us, "and His dying; and all the pains and
- passions of all His creatures, ghostly and bodily; _and the beholding
- of this_--with all pains that ever were or ever shall be" (xxvii).
- From sin, except as a general conception, Julian's natural instinct
- was to turn her eyes; but with this Christly compassion in her heart
- in looking on the sorrows of the world she could not but take account
- of its sin. As she came to be convinced that "though we be highly
- lifted up into contemplation, it is needful for us to see our own
- sin,"--albeit we should not accuse ourselves "overdone much" or "be
- heavy or sorrowful indiscreetly"--so when sins of others were brought
- before her she would seek with compassion to take the sinner's part of
- contrition and prayer. "The beholding of other man's sins, it maketh
- as it were a thick mist afore the eyes of the soul, and we cannot,
- for the time, see the fairness of God, but if we can behold them with
- contrition with him, with compassion on him, and with holy desire to
- God for him" (lxxvi.).
- And notwithstanding all the stir and eager revival of the Fourteenth
- Century in religion, politics, literature and general life, there
- was much both of sin and of sorrow then to exercise the pitiful
- soul--troubles enough in Norwich itself, of oppression and riot and
- desolating pestilence--troubles enough in Europe, West and East,--wars
- and enslaving and many cruelties in distant lands, and harried Armenian
- Christians coming to the Court of Edward to plead for succour in
- their long-enduring patience. There was trouble wherever one looked;
- but to prayer, and to that compassion which is in itself a prayer,
- the answer came. Indeed the compassion was its own first immediate
- answer: for "then I saw that each kind compassion that man hath on his
- _even-Cristen_ (his fellow-Christians) with charity, _it is Christ in
- him_." This is the comfort that both comforts in waiting and calls to
- deeds of help. And such "charity" of social service was not beyond the
- scope of the life "enclosed,"--whether it might be by deed or, as more
- often, by speech.[10]
- It is in her seeking for truth and her beholding of Love that we best
- know Julian. Of the opening of the Revelation she says: "In all this
- I was greatly stirred in charity to mine even-Christians, that they
- might see and know the same that I saw: for I would it were comfort to
- them," and again and again throughout the book she declares that the
- "special Shewing" is given not for her in special, but for all--for all
- are meant to be one in comfort as all are one in need. "Because of the
- Shewing I am not good, but if I love God the better: and in as much as
- ye love God the better it is more to you than to me.... For we are all
- one in comfort. For truly it was not shewed me that God loved me better
- than the least soul that is in grace; for I am certain that there be
- many that never had any Shewing nor sight but of the common teaching of
- Holy Church that love God better than I. For if I look singularly to
- myself I am right nought; but in general [manner of regarding] I am, I
- hope, in oneness of charity with all mine even-Christians. For in this
- oneness standeth the life of all mankind that shall be saved, and that
- which I say of me, I say in the person of all mine even-Christians: for
- I am taught in the Spiritual Shewing of our Lord God that He meaneth
- it so. And therefore I pray you for God's sake, and counsel you for
- your own profit that ye leave the beholding of a worthless creature [a
- "wretch"] it was shewed to and mightily, wisely and meekly behold God
- that of His special goodness would shew it generally, in comfort of us
- all" (ix.).
- Thus Julian turns our eyes from looking _on_ her to looking _with_ her
- on the Revelation of Divine Love.
- Yet surely in her we have also "a shewing"--a shewing of the same.
- She tells us little of her own story, and little is told us of her
- by any one else, but all through her recording of the Revelation the
- simple creature to whom it was made unconsciously shews herself, so
- that soon we come to know her with a pleasure that surely she would
- not think too "special" in its regard. (For she herself in speaking
- of Love makes note that the general does not exclude the special).
- Perhaps we are helped in this friendly acquaintanceship by those
- endearingly characteristic little formulas of speech disavowing any
- claim to dogmatic authority in the statements of her views of truth:
- those modest parentheses "as to my sight," "as to mine understanding."
- "Wisdom and truth and love," the dower that she saw in the Gracious
- soul, were surely in the soul of this meek woman; but enclosing
- these gifts of nature and grace are qualities special to Julian:
- depth of passion, with quietness, order, and moderation; loyalty in
- faith, with clearest candour--"I believe ... but this was not shewed
- me"--(xxxiii., lxxvii., lxxx.) pitifulness and sympathy, with hope and
- a blithe serenity; sound good sense with a little sparkle upon it--as
- of delicate humour (that crowning virtue of saints); and beneath all,
- above all, an exquisite tenderness that turns her speech to music. "_I
- will lay thy Stones with fair Colours._"
- "Thou hast the dews of thy youth." Hundreds of years have gone since
- that early morning in May when Julian thought she was dying and was
- "partly troubled" for she felt she was yet in youth and would gladly
- have served God more on earth with the gift of her days--hundreds
- of years since the time that her heart would fain have been told by
- special Shewing that "a certain creature I loved should continue in
- good living"--but still we have "mind" of her as "a gentle neighbour
- and of our knowing." For those that love in simplicity are always
- young; and those that have had with the larger Vision of Love the gift
- of love's passionate speech, to God or man, in word or form or deed, as
- treasure held--live yet on the earth, untouched by time, though their
- light is shining elsewhere for other sight.
- "From that time that the Revelation was shewed I desired oftentimes to
- learn what was our Lord's meaning. And fifteen years afterwards and
- more, I was answered in ghostly understanding, saying thus: _Wouldst
- thou learn thy Lord's meaning in this thing? Learn it well: Love was
- His meaning. Who shewed it thee? Love. What shewed He thee? Love.
- Wherefore shewed it He? For Love. Hold thee therein and thou shalt
- learn and know more in the same. But thou shalt never know nor learn
- other thing without end._"
- And if we, with no special shewing, might ask and, in trust of
- "spiritual understanding," might answer more--asking _to whom_, and
- _for whom_ was the Revelation shewed, we might answer: _To one that
- loved_; for all that would learn in love.
- "_Ecco chi crescerà li nostri amori_"[11]
- "Here is one who shall increase our love."
- Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be comforted.
- Blessed are the meek: for they shall inherit the earth.
- Blessed are the pure in heart: for they shall see God.
- [1] This must have been a Friday--sacred Day of the Passion of
- Christ--for Easter Sunday of 1373 was on the 17th of April (O.S.). So
- when the Revelation finally closed and Julian was left to "keep it in
- the Faith"--the Common Christian Faith--it was Sunday morning, and
- the words and voices she would hear through her window opening into
- the Church would be from the early worship of "the Blessed Common"
- assembled there.
- [2] See the _Ancren Riwle_, Part viii. _Of Domestic Matters_, for
- counsels to anchoresses as to judicious care of the body: diet,
- washing, needful rest, avoidance of idleness and gloom, reading, sewing
- for Church and Poor, making and mending and washing of clothes by the
- anchoress or her servant. "Ye may be well content with your clothes, be
- they white, be they black; only see that they be plain, and warm, and
- well made--skins well tanned; and have as many as you need.... Let your
- shoes be thick and warm."
- [3] _cf._ Robert Browning, _Rabbi Ben Ezra_, xii.
- [4] S. de Cressy was probably the originator of the designation "Mother
- Juliana." The old name was _Julian_. The Virgin-Martyr of the Legend
- entitled "The Life of St Juliana" (Early English Text Society) is
- called in the Manuscripts, Iulane, Juliene, and Juliane and Julian.
- So also _Lady Julian Berners_ is a name in the history of Fifteenth
- Century books.
- [5] "So he kneeled at her window and anon the recluse opened it, and
- asked Sir Percival what he would. 'Madam,' said he, 'I am a knight of
- King Arthur's Court and my name is Sir Percival de Galis.' So when the
- recluse heard his name, she had passing great joy of him, for greatly
- she loved him before all other knights of the world; and so of right
- she ought to do, for she was his aunt."--Malory's _Morte d'Arthur_,
- xiv. i.
- [6] _Manuale ad usum insignis ecclesie Sarisburiensis_ (ed. of 1555),
- fo. lxix. _Servitium includendorum._
- [7] "_pietatis_."
- [8] The sins that Julian mentions, "despair or doubtful dread," "sloth
- and losing of time," "unskilful [unpractical, unreasoning] heaviness
- and vain sorrow," seem to be all akin to that dreaded sin, besetting
- particularly the Contemplative life, _Accidia_. See _Ancren Riwle_ p.
- 287. "_Accidies salue is gestlich gledshipe._ The remedy for indolence
- is spiritual joy, and the consolation of joyful hope from reading and
- from holy meditation, or when spoken by the mouth of man. Often, dear
- sisters, ye ought to pray less, that ye may read more. Reading is
- good prayer. Reading teacheth how, and for what ye ought to pray. In
- reading, when the heart feels delight, devotion ariseth, and that is
- worth many prayers. Everything, however, may be overdone. Moderation is
- always best."--(Pub. by the Camden Society).
- [9] Canticles ii. 10. St John xiv. 31.
- [10] See the chapter "How an Anchoress shall behave herself to them
- that come to her," in "The Scale of Perfection," by Walter Hilton (died
- 1396), edition of 1659, p. 106. "Since it is so that thou oughtest not
- to goe out of thy house to seek occasion how thou mightest profit thy
- Neighbour by deeds of Charity, because thou art enclosed; ... therefore
- who so will speake with thee ... be thou soon ready with a good will to
- aske what his will is ... for thou knowest not what he is, nor why he
- cometh, nor what need he hath of thee, or thou of him, till thou hast
- tryed. And though thou be at prayer, or at thy devotions, that thou
- thinkest loth to break off, for that thou thinkest that thou oughtest
- not leave God for to speake with any one, I think not so in this case,
- for if thou be wise, thou shalt not leave God, but thou shalt find him,
- and have him, and see him in thy Neighbour as well as in prayer, onely
- in another manner. If thou canst love thy Neighbour well, to speake
- with thy Neighbour with discretion shall be no hindrance to thee....
- If he come to tell thee his disease [distress] or trouble, and to be
- comforted by thy speech, heare him gladly, and suffer him to say what
- he will for ease of his own heart; And when he hath done, comfort him
- if thou canst, gladly, gently, and charitably, and soon break off. And
- then, after that, if he will fall into idle tales, or vanities of the
- World, or of other men's actions, answer him but little, and feed not
- his speech, and he will soon be weary, and quickly take his leave," etc.
- [11] Dante, _Paradiso_, v. 105.
- PART II
- THE MANNER OF THE BOOK
- As an hert desirith to the wellis of watris:
- so thou God, my soule desirith to thee....
- The Lord sent his merci in the day:
- and his song in the nyght.
- Ps. '_Quemadmodum_'; from the _Prymer_.
- Without any special study of the literature of Mysticism for purposes
- of comparison, in reading Julian's book one is struck by a few
- characteristics wherein it differs from many other Mystical writings
- as well as by qualities that belong to most or all of that general
- designation.
- The silence of this book both as to preliminary ascetic exercises and
- as to ultimate visions of the Absolute, might be attributed to Julian's
- being wholly concerned with giving, for comfort to all, that special
- sight of truth that came to her as the answer to her own need. She sets
- out not to teach methods of any kind for the gradual drawing near of
- man to God, but to record and shew forth a Revelation, granted once, of
- God's actual nearness to the soul, and for this Revelation she herself
- had been prepared by the "stirring" of her conscience, her love and
- her understanding, in a word of her _faith_, even as she was in short
- time to be left "neither sign nor token," but only the Revelation to
- hold "in faith." Moreover, the means that in general she looks to for
- realising God's nearness, in whatever measure or manner the revelation
- of it may come to any soul, is the immediate one of faith as a gift
- of nature and a grace from the Holy Ghost: faith leading by prayer,
- and effort of obedience, and teachableness of spirit, into actual
- experience of oneness with God. The natural and common heritage of
- love and faith is a theme that is dear to Julian: in her view, longing
- toward God is grounded in the love to Him that is native to the human
- heart, and this longing (painful through sin) as it is stirred by the
- Holy Spirit, who comes with Christ, is, in each naturally developed
- Christian, spontaneous and increasing;--"for the nearer we be to our
- bliss, the more we long after it" (xlvi., lxxii., lxxxi.). "This is
- the kinde [the natural] yernings of the soule by the touching of the
- Holy Ghost: _God of Thy goodness give me Thyself: for Thou art enow
- to me, and I may nothing ask that is less that may be full worshippe
- to Thee_." God is the first as well as the last: the soul begins as
- well as ends with God: begins by Nature, begins again by Mercy, and
- ends--yet "without end"--by Grace. Certainly on the way--the way of
- these three, by falling, by succour, by upraising--to the more perfect
- knowing of God that is the soul's Fulfilment in Heaven, there is a less
- immediate knowledge to be gained through experience: "_And if I aske
- anything that is lesse, ever me wantith_," for "It needyth us to have
- knoweing of the littlehede of creatures and to nowtyn all thing that
- is made, for to love and have God that is onmade." But this knowing
- of the littleness of creatures comes to Julian first of all in a sight
- of _the Goodness of God_; "For [to] a soule that seith the Maker of
- all, all that is made semith full litil." By the further beholding,
- indeed, of God as Maker and Preserver, that which has been rightly
- "noughted" as of no account, is seen to be also truly of much account.
- For that which was seen by the soul as so little that it seemed to be
- about to fall to nothing for littleness, is seen by the understanding
- to have "three properties":--God made it, God loveth it, God keepeth
- it. Thus it is known as "great and large, fair and good"; "it lasteth,
- and ever shall, for God loveth it."--Yet again the soul breaks away
- to its own, with the natural flight of a bird from its Autumn nest at
- the call of an unseen Spring to the far-off land that is nearer still
- than its nest, because it is in its heart. "But what is to _me_ sothly
- [in verity] the Maker, the Keper and the Lover,--I cannot tell, for
- till I am Substantially oned [deeply united] to Him, I may never have
- full rest ne very blisse; that is to sey, that I be so festined to
- Him, that there is right nowte that is made betwix my God and me" (v.,
- viii.). This "fastening" is all that in Julian's book represents that
- needful process wherein the truth of asceticism has a part. It is not
- essentially a process of detaching the thought from created things of
- time--still less one of detaching the heart from created beings of
- eternity--but a process of more and more allowing and presenting the
- man to be fastened closely to God by means of the original longing
- of the soul, the influence of the Holy Ghost, and the discipline of
- life with its natural tribulations, which by their purifying serve to
- strengthen the affections that remaining pass through them. "_But only
- in Thee I have all._" On the way this discovery of the soul at peace
- must needs be sometimes a word for exclusion, in parting and pressing
- onward from things that are made: in the end it is the welcome,
- all-inclusive. And Julian, notwithstanding her enclosure as a recluse,
- is one of those that, happy in nature and not too much hindered by
- conditions of life, possess for large use _by the way_ the mystical
- peace of fulfilled possession through virtue of freedom from bondage
- to self. For it is by means of the tyranny of the "self," regarding
- chiefly itself in its claims and enjoyments, that creature things can
- be intruded between the soul and God; and always, in some way, the meek
- inherit the earth. "All things are yours; and ye are Christ's."
- The life of a recluse demanded, no doubt, as other lives do, a daily
- self-denial as well as an initiatory self-devotion, and from Julian's
- silence as to "bodily exercises" it cannot of course be assumed that
- she did not give them, even beyond the incumbent rule of the Church,
- though not in excess of her usual moderation, some part in her
- Christian striving for mastery over self. Nor could this silence in
- itself be taken as a proof that ascetic practices had not in her view a
- preparatory function such as has by many of the Mystics been assigned
- to them during a process of self-training in the earlier stages of
- the soul's ascent to aptitude for mystical vision. It is, however, to
- be noted that neither in regard to herself nor others do we hear from
- Julian anything about an undertaking of this kind. To her the "special
- Shewing" came as a gift, unearned, and unexpected: it came in an
- abundant answer to a prayer for other things needed by every soul.[1]
- Julian's desires for herself were for three "wounds" to be made more
- deep in her life: contrition (in sight of sin), compassion (in sight
- of sorrow) and longing after God: she prayed and sought diligently for
- these graces, comprehensive as she felt they were of the Christian life
- and meant for all; and with them she sought to have for herself, in
- particular regard to her own difficulties, a sight of such truth as it
- might "behove" her to know for the glory of God and the comfort of men.
- According to Julian the "special Shewing" is a gift of comfort for all,
- sent by God in a time to some soul that is chosen in order that it may
- have, and so may minister, the comfort needed by itself and by others
- (ix.). In her experience this Revelation, soon closed, is renewed by
- influence and enlightenment in the more ordinary grace of its giver,
- the Holy Ghost. But a still fuller sight of God shall be given, she
- rejoices to think, in Heaven, to _all_ that shall reach that Fulfilment
- of blessed life--the only mount of the soul set forth in this book.
- Thither, by the high-road of Christ, all souls may go, making the steep
- ascent through "longing and desire,"--longing that embodies itself in
- desire towards God, that is, in Prayer.
- Nothing is said by Julian as to successive stages of Prayer, though
- she speaks of different _kinds_ of prayer as the natural action of the
- soul under different experiences or in different states of feeling
- or "dryness." Prayer is _asking_ ("beseeching"), with submission
- and acquiescence; or _beholding_, with the _self_ forgotten, yet
- offered-up; it is a thanking and a praising in the heart that sometimes
- breaks forth into voice; or a silent joy in the sight of God as
- all-sufficient. And in all these ways "Prayer oneth the soul to God."
- To Julian's understanding the only Shewing of God that could ever be,
- the highest and lowest, the first and the last, was the Vision of Him
- as Love. "Hold thee therin and thou shalt witten and knowen more in the
- same. But thou shalt never knowen ne witten other thing without end.
- Thus was I lerid that Love was our Lord's menyng" (lxxxvi.). Alien to
- the "simple creature" was that desert region where some of the lovers
- of God have endeavoured to find Him,--desiring an extreme penetration
- of thought (human thought, after all, since for men there is none
- beyond it) or an utmost reach of worship (worship from fire and ice) in
- proclaiming the Absolute One not only as All that _is_, but as All that
- is _not_. Julian's desire was truly for God in Himself, through Christ
- by the Holy Spirit of Love: for God in "His homeliest home," the soul,
- for God in His City. Therefore she follows only the upward way of the
- light attempered by grace, not turning back to the _Via Negativa_, that
- downward road that starting from a conception of the Infinite "as the
- antithesis of the finite,"[2] rather than as including and transcending
- the finite, leads man to deny to his words of God all qualities known
- or had by human, finite beings. Julian keeps on the way that is natural
- to her spirit and to all her habits of thought as these may have been
- directed by reading and conversation: it does not take her towards
- that Divine Darkness of which some seers have brought report. Hers was
- not one of those souls that would, and must, go silent and alone and
- strenuous through strange places: "homely and courteous" she ever found
- Almighty God in Jesus Christ our Lord.
- Julian's mystical sight was not a negation of human modes of thought:
- neither was it a torture to human powers of speech nor a death-sentence
- to human activities of feeling. "He hath no despite of that which He
- hath made" (vi.). This seer of the littleness of all that is made saw
- the Divine as containing, not as engulfing, all things that truly are,
- so that in some way "all things that are made" because of His love last
- ever. Certainly she passes sometimes beyond the language of earth,
- seeing a love and a Goodness "more than tongue can tell," but she is
- never inarticulate in any painful, struggling way--when words are
- not to be found that can tell all the truth revealed, she leaves her
- Lord's "meaning" to be taken directly from Him by the understanding of
- each desirous soul. So is it with the Shewing of God as the Goodness
- of everything that is good: "It is I--it is I" (xxvi.). Certainly
- Julian looks both downward and upward, sees Love in the lowest depth,
- far below sin, below even Mercy; sees Love as the highest that can
- be, rising higher and higher far above sight, in skies that as yet
- she is not called to enter: "abysses" there are, below and above,
- like Angela di Foligno's "double abyss"; but here is no desert region
- like that where Angela seems as "an eagle descending"[3] from heights
- of unbreathable air, baffled and blinded in its assault on the Sun,
- proclaiming the Light Unspeakable in anguished, hoarse, inarticulate
- cries; here is a mountain-path between the abysses and the sound as of
- a chorus from pilgrims singing:
- "Praise to the Holiest in the height
- And in the depth be praise";--
- 'ALL IS WELL: ALL IS WELL: ALL SHALL BE WELL.'
- Moreover, Julian while guided by Reason is _led_ by the "Mind" of her
- soul--pioneer of the path through the wood of darkness though Reason
- is ready to disentangle the lower hindrances of the way; and where
- her instructed soul "finds rest," those things that are hid from the
- wisdom and prudence of Reason only are to its simplicity of obedience
- revealed. Even as her Way is Christ-Jesus, and her walk by "longing
- and desire" is of faith and effort, so the End and the Rest that she
- seeks is the _fulness_ of God, in measure as the soul can enter upon
- His fulness here and in that heavenly "oneing" with Him which shall
- be by grace the "fulfilling" and "overpassing" of "Mankind." "The
- Mid-Person willed to be Ground and Head of this fair End," "out of
- Whom we ben al cum, in Whom we be all inclosid, into Whom we shall all
- wyndyn, in Him fynding our full Hevyn in everlestand joye" (liii.).[4]
- The soul that participates in God cannot be lost in God, the soul
- that wends into oneness with God finds there at last its Self. Words
- of the Spirit-nature fail to describe to man, as he is, this fulness
- of personal life, and Julian falls back in one effort, daring in its
- infantine concreteness of language, on acts of all the five senses to
- symbolise the perfection of spiritual life that is in oneness with God
- (xliii.).
- It may be noted that in these "Revelations" there is absolutely no
- regarding of Christ as the "Bridegroom" of the individual soul: once
- or twice Julian in passing uses the symbol of "the Spouse," "the Fair
- Maiden," "His loved Wife," but this she applies only to the Church. In
- her usual speech Christ when unnamed is our "Good" or our "Courteous"
- Lord, or sometimes simply "God," and when she seeks to express
- pictorially His union with men and His work for men, then the soul is
- the Child and Christ is the Mother. In this symbolic language the love
- of the Christian soul is the love of the Child to its Mother and to
- each of the other children.
- Julian's Mystical views seem in parts to be cognate with those of
- earlier and later systems based on Plato's philosophy, and especially
- perhaps on his doctrine of Love as reaching through the beauties of
- created things higher and higher to union with the Absolute Beauty
- above, Which is God--schemes of thought developed before her and in
- her time by Plotinus, Clement, Augustine, Dionysius "the Areopagite,"
- John the Scot, Eckhart, the Victorines,[5] Ruysbroeck, and others.
- One does not know what her reading may have been, or with what people
- she may have conversed. Possibly the learned Austin Friars that were
- settled close to St Julian's in Conisford may have lent her books by
- some of these writers, or she may have been influenced through talks
- with a Confessor, or with some of the Flemish weavers of Norwich,
- with whom Mystical views were not uncommon. Yet the Mysticism of the
- "Revelations" is peculiarly of the English type. Less exuberant in
- language than Richard Rolle, the Hermit of Hampole, Julian resembles
- him a little in her blending of practical sense with devotional
- fervour; but the writer to whom she seems, at any rate in some of
- her phrases, most akin is Walter Hilton, her contemporary.[6] Hilton,
- however, is very rich in quotations from the Bible, while Julian's
- only direct quotations from any book--beyond her reference to the
- legend of St Dionysius--are one that belongs to Christ: "I thirst"
- (xvii.), and two that belong to the soul: "Lord, save me: I perish!"
- "Nothing shal depart me from the charite of Criste" (xv.). (And indeed
- these three are a fit embodiment of the Christian Faith as seen in
- her "Revelations.") But Julian, while perhaps more speculative than
- either of these typical English Mystics, is thoroughly a woman. Lacking
- their literary method of procedure, she has a high and tender beauty
- of thought and a delicate bloom of expression that are her own rare
- gifts--the beauty of the hills against skies in summer evenings, of an
- orchard in mornings of April. Again and again she stirs in the reader
- a kind of surprised gladness of the simple perfection wherewith she
- utters, by few and adequate words, a thought that in its quietness
- convinces of truth, or an emotion deep in life. Of a little child
- it has been said: "He thought great thoughts simply," and Julian's
- deepness of insight and simplicity of speech are like the Child's.[7]
- "For ere that He made us He loved us, and when we were made we loved
- Him" (liii.). "I love thee, and thou lovest me, and our love shall
- not be disparted in two" (lxxxii.). "_Thou art my Heaven._" "I had
- liefer have been in that pain till Doomsday than have come to Heaven
- otherwise than by Him." "Human is the vehemence," says a writer on
- Julian's "Revelations," of that reiterated exclusion of all other
- paths to joy. 'Me liked,' she says, 'none other heaven.' Once again
- she touches the same octave, condensing in a single phrase which has
- seldom been transcended in its brief expression of the possession that
- leaves the infinity of love's desire still unsatiated: '_I saw Him
- and sought Him, I had Him, and I wanted Him._' Fletcher's tenderness,
- Ford's passion lose colour placed side by side with the utterances
- of this worn recluse whose hands are empty of every treasure."[8]
- Sometimes with her subject her language assumes a majestic solemnity:
- "The pillars of Heaven shall tremble and quake" (lxxv.); sometimes it
- seems to march to its goal in an ascent of triumphal measure as with
- beating of drums: "The body was in the grave till Easter-morrow and
- from that time He lay nevermore. For then was rightfully ended" ...
- (close of Chap. li.). Generally, perhaps, the style in its movement
- recalls the rippling yet even flow of a brook, cheerfully, sweetly
- monotonous: "If any such lover be in earth which is continually kept
- from falling, I know it not: for it was not shewed me. But this was
- shewed: that in falling and in rising we are ever preciously kept in
- one love" (lxxxii.). But now and again the listener seems to be caught
- up to Heaven with song, as in that time when her "marvelling" joy in
- beholding love "breaks out with voice":--"Behold and see! the precious
- plenty of His dearworthy blood descended down into Hell, and braste her
- bands, and delivered all that were there that belonged to the Court of
- Heaven. The precious plenty of His dearworthy blood overfloweth all
- Earth and is ready to wash all creatures of sin which be of goodwill,
- _have_ been and _shall_ be. The precious plenty of His dearworthy blood
- ascended up into Heaven to the blessed body of our Lord Jesus Christ,
- and there is in Him, bleeding and praying for us to the Father, and is
- and shall be as long as it needeth; and ever shall be as long as it
- needeth; and evermore it floweth in all Heavens, enjoying the salvation
- of all mankind that _are_ there, and _shall_ be--fulfilling the Number
- that faileth" (xii.).
- The Early English Mystics make good reading,--even as to the mere
- manner of their writings we might say, if it were possible to separate
- the style from the freshness of feeling and the pointedness of thought
- that inform it; and though we do not, of course, have from Julian,--a
- woman writing of the _Revelations of Love_,--the delightfully
- trenchant, easy address of Hilton in his counsels as to how to scale
- the _Ladder of Perfection_--counsels both wise and witty--yet Julian,
- too, with all her sweetness, is full of this every day vigour and
- common sense. And sometimes she puts things in a naïve, engaging way
- of her own, grave and yet light--as if with a little understanding
- smile to those to whom she is speaking:--"Then ween we, who _be_ not
- all wise"; "That the outward part should draw the inward to assent _was
- not shewed to me_, but that the inward draweth the outward by grace and
- both shall be oned in bliss without end by the virtue of Christ, _this_
- was shewed" (lxi., xix.).
- Rolle, Hilton, and more especially the _Ancren Riwle_, give examples
- of that custom of allegorical interpretation of Sacred Scriptures that
- has fascinated many mystical authors, but one can scarcely suppose
- that this method would ever have been a favourite one with Julian
- even if she had been in the way of dealing with literary parallels
- and references. For though she uses "examples," or illustrations
- (sometimes calling them "shewings," or "bodily examples") and also
- metaphorically figurative speech, she does not shew any interest in
- elaborate, arbitrary symbolism. At any rate she is too directly simple,
- it seems, and too much in the centre of realities, to be a writer that
- (without constraint of following the lines of others) would take as
- foundation for an argument or an exposition outward resemblances or
- verbal connections, fit perhaps to illustrate or enforce the truth
- in question, but lacking in relation to it that inward vital oneness
- whereby certain things that to man seem below him may become symbolic
- to him of others that he beholds as within or above him.
- Exposition by analysis has been reckoned to be characteristic of the
- Schoolmen rather than of the Mystics,[9] though surely a mystical sight
- may be served by an analytical process, and to see God in a part before
- or while He is seen in the whole is effected not without analysis of
- the subtlest kind. So we find analysis in Julian's sight (Rev. iii.):
- "_I saw God in a point_"; and in her conclusions from this: "_By
- which sight I saw that He is in all things_"; and in her immediate
- raising, from this conclusion, of the question: "_What is sin?_" and
- throughout her treatment of the problem in the scheme of her book.
- Even for the merely formal task of distinguishing by number, Julian,
- we see, will set briskly forward (though we may not feel much inclined
- to follow) and often she begins her careful dissections with: "In this
- I see"--four, five, or six things, as the case may be. Her speech of
- spiritual Revelations is, however, helped out less by numbers than by
- living and homely things of sight: the mother and the children and the
- nurse; lords and servants, kings and their subjects (with echoes of
- the language of Court and chivalry); the deep sea-ground, waters for
- our service; clothing, in its warmth, grace and colour; the light that
- stands in the night, the hazel-nut, the scales of herrings.[10]
- As one grows familiar with the "Revelations" one finds oneself in the
- midst of a great scheme: a network of ideas that cross and re-cross
- each other in a way not very clear at first, perhaps, but not really in
- confusion. All through this treatise from its beginning, the Revelation
- as a whole is in the mind of Julian; interpolation by another writer is
- out of the question: the book is all of a piece, both as the expression
- of one person, in mind and character, and as the setting forth of
- a theological system. From the first we find Julian holding her
- diverse threads of nature and mercy and grace for the fabric of love
- she is weaving, and all through she guides them in and out, with no
- hesitation, till at last the whole design lies fair before her, shewing
- the _Goodness of God_.
- With regard to this scheme it may be noted that apart from her merely
- intellectual pleasure in arithmetical methods of statement, Julian
- shews throughout a mystical sense of numerical correspondences. Life,
- both as being and action, is, to her sight, in its perfection full of
- _trinities_; while there are _doubles_,--incident to its imperfection,
- as we may put it, perhaps, though the book itself does not mark this
- distinction in so many words--there are doubles wherein two things are
- partially opposed and require for their reconciling a third that will
- complete them into trinity. First, as the Centre of all, there is the
- BLESSED TRINITY: All-Might, All-Wisdom, All-Love: one Goodness: FATHER
- and SON and HOLY GHOST: one Truth. To the First, Second, and Third
- Persons correspond the verbs MAY, for all-powerful freedom to do; CAN,
- for all-skilful ability to do; WILL, for all-loving will to do. So also
- "the Father _willeth_, the Son _worketh_, the Holy Ghost _confirmeth_."
- Another nomenclature of the Holy Trinity is, Might, Wisdom, Goodness:
- one Love; but that of Might, Wisdom, Love (employed by Abelard,
- Aquinas, and the Schoolmen generally) is the usual one, while _Truth,
- Wisdom, Love,_ is employed in reference to that Image of God wherein
- Man is made: for man has not _created might_: his might is all in the
- uncreated might of God. Man in his essential Nature is "made-trinity,"
- "like to the unmade Blessed Trinity"--a human trinity of truth, wisdom,
- love; and these respectively _see, behold, and delight in_ the Divine
- Trinity of Truth, Wisdom, Love.
- Man possesses _Reason,_ which _knows, Mind,_ or a feeling wisdom, which
- _wits,_ and _Love,_ which _loves_. The making of Man by the Son of
- God as Eternal Christ, is the work of _Nature_; the falling of Man is
- "suffered" (allowed), and afterwards healed, by _Mercy_; the raising
- of Man to a higher than his first state is the work of _Grace_. "In
- Nature we have our Being; in Mercy we have our Increasing; in Grace
- we have our Fulfilling." The work of grace by means of our natural
- Reason enlightened by the Holy Ghost to see our sins, is _Contrition_;
- by means of our naturally-feeling Mind, touched by the Holy Ghost
- to behold the pain of the world, is _Compassion_; by means of our
- nature-and grace-inspired Love, which loves our Maker and Saviour
- (still by the separation of sin partially, painfully, hid from our
- sight) is greater _Longing toward God_. This longing must become an
- active "desire": for the chief work that we can do as fellow-workers
- with God in achieving full oneness with Him is _Prayer_; of which there
- are three things to understand: its _Ground_ is God by whose Goodness
- it springeth in us; its _use_ is "to turn our will to the will of our
- Lord"; its _end_ is "that we should be made one with and like to our
- Lord in all things." And lastly we have for this life, both by nature
- and grace, the comprehensive virtue of _Faith_, "in which all our
- virtues come to us" and which has in its own nature three elements:
- _understanding, belief,_ and _trust_. With Faith, which belongs perhaps
- chiefly to Reason,--Faith is "nought else but a right understanding,
- with true belief and sure trust, of our Being: that we are in God, and
- God in us, Whom we see not," "A light by nature coming from our endless
- Day, that is our Father, God" (liv., lxxxiii.)--is also _Hope_, which
- belongs to our feeling Mind (our Remembrance) and to the work of Mercy
- in this our fallen state: "Hope that we shall come to our Substance
- (our high and heavenly nature) again." Moreover, "Charity keepeth us
- in Hope and Hope leadeth us in Charity; and in the end all shall be
- _Charity_" (lxxxv.).
- With these trinities and groups of threes are others, belonging to God
- and man, mentioned successively in the closing chapters of the book:
- three manners of God's Beholding (or Regard of Countenance): that of
- the Passion, that of Compassion, and that of Bliss; three kinds of
- longing God has: to teach us, to have us, to fulfil us; three things
- that man needs in this life from God: Love, Longing, and Pity--"pity in
- love," to keep him now, and "longing in the same love" to draw him to
- heaven; three things by which man standeth in this life and by which
- God is worshipped: "use of man's reason natural; common teaching of
- Holy Church; inward gracious working of the Holy Ghost";--and last of
- all, "three properties of God, in which the strength and effect of all
- the Revelation standeth," "_Life, Love and Light_."
- Again, Julian speaks of things that are _double_, and this double state
- seems to be one of imperfection, though she does not explicitly say
- so. Man's nature, she says, was created "double": "_Substance_" or
- Spirit essential from out of the Spirit Divine, and "_Sensuality_" or
- spirit related to human senses and making human faculties, intellectual
- and physical. These two, the Substance and Sense-soul, in their
- imperfection of union through the frailty of created love (which needs
- the divine in its might to support it), became partially sundered
- by the failing of love. "For failing of love on our part, therefore,
- is all our travail"--from that comes the falling, the dying, and the
- painful travail between death from sin and life from God--both in the
- race and the individual. But Christ makes the double into trinity:
- for Christ is "the Mean [the medium] that keepeth the Substance and
- Sense-soul together" in his Eternal, Divine-Human Nature, because of
- His perfect love; and Christ-Incarnate in His Mercy, by this same
- perfect love brings these two parts anew and more closely together;
- and Christ uprisen, indwelling in the soul thus united, will keep them
- forever together, in oneness growing with oneness to Him. Moreover, Man
- being double also as "soul and body," needs to be "saved from double
- death," and this salvation, given, is Jesus-Christ, who joined Himself
- to us in the Incarnation and "yielded us up from the Cross with His
- Soul and Body into His Father's hands."
- In a mere reading of the Book these repeated correspondences may be
- felt as wearisome, formal, fantastic,--or rather they may seem so when,
- as here, they are brought together and noted, for Julian herself simply
- speaks of these different groups as they come in her theme. But when
- one tries to follow the _thought_ of this book amongst the heights
- and depths of the things that are seen and temporal and the things
- unseen and eternal, these likenesses, found in all, seem to afford
- one guidance and surety of footing, like steps cut out in a steep
- and difficult path. And as one goes on, and the whole of the meaning
- takes form, these significations of something all-prevailing give one a
- partial understanding such as Julian perhaps may have had: the feeling,
- the "Mind," of a certain half-caught measure in "all things that are,"
- a proportion, a oneness. We are amongst free nature's mountains, but
- they do not rise haphazard: they shew a strange, a balanced beauty
- of line and light and shade, as convincing, if not as clear in its
- intention as the sunrise-lines and colouring of the euphrasy flower
- at our feet. We hear as we walk the wandering sound of "the vagrant,
- casual wind," but there is something in its rise and fall, and rising
- again, that has kinship with the flow and ebb and onrush of the
- lingering, punctual waves on the shore. _Sursum Corda._
- [1] The soon-forgotten petition of Julian's youth for a "bodily
- sickness" does not seem to have had any connection in her mind with
- special Revelation: it was desired neither as in any way a sign
- of invisible things nor as a direct means of beholding them. And
- probably, as a matter of fact, the sickness that was granted helped
- her in the way that she had desired, helped her to the sight of the
- Revelation, not directly, but by drawing her spirit to that utter
- dependence on and trust in God that is death's first lesson for all,
- that uttermost self-devotion to God that is life's last exercise.
- This spiritual state, with all that through years had gone before
- of feeling and thought and life's experience, made her ready to
- be shewn with special largeness and clearness God's love: how it
- filled the empty place of sin and pain and sorrow with its divine
- fulness. As to the "bodily sight" introducing the Revelation, a
- sight of "parts of the Passion," which may be compared with "The XV.
- Oos"--'_Orationes_'--Passion-prayers each beginning with '_O_' (_v.
- Hora_ of Sarum), it was recognised by Julian herself, even at the
- time of her seeing it, as being a sight of things "not in substance
- or nature." In this recognition it was proved to be neither _mental
- delusion_ nor mere "raving" delirium. But it would, it seems, be
- natural that in her weakness of body and her exaltation of spirit (so
- tense that the strength of her self-surrender to death seemed to cast
- her back upon bodily life in the painless world between the two) some
- sort of _physical illusion_ should be brought about by her prolonged
- gaze upon the Face of the Crucifix, and that in her desire to enter
- into the sufferings of the Passion as fully as those friends of her
- Lord's that beheld it, Julian thus gazing in the midst of night's
- shadows and the dim light of dawn should seem to herself to behold
- the sacred drops, depicted beneath the painted or sculptured Crown of
- Thorns, flow down "right plenteously." Julian gave thanks for this
- and all the "bodily sight" as a gift from God. By Him sickness and
- illusion, as well as things evil, are "suffered" to come, and by Him
- Revelation is given according to sundry times in diverse manners. Gain
- of the spirit through failure of the body--and no less by illusions of
- fever than by trance-state visions their seers speak of, when Death
- passes the Spirit half through the gates--would indeed be accordant
- with the truth of the Shewing that came to Julian, how man is raised
- through shame and death into glory and life, since in the weakness of
- failing men the strength of Christ is made perfect.
- [2] See the Bampton Lectures on _Christian Mysticism_. W. R. Inge. (p.
- 111.)
- [3] See the Introduction to _Le Livre des Visions et Instructions de la
- Bienheureuse Angèle de Foligno_, traduit par Ernest Hello. Paris, 1895.
- [4]
- "When that which drew from out the boundless deep
- Turns again home."
- [5] _v._ pp. 27, 57, 126, 156, 168; _cf._ Dionysius: "_On Divine
- Names._" Cap. iv. (tr. by Parker). S. Aug. _Conf._: b. i. ch. 2; iii.
- 7; iv. 10-16; vii. 12-18.
- [6] See the extract from Hilton given as a note to chapter lvii.
- [7] _Little Flowers of a Childhood_ (in Mem. J. D. W., Oct. 1894--March
- 1899). Some of the thoughts of children,--some of the rising thoughts
- of a very little child who, like Julian, faced the darkness of time
- (steadfast as Dürer's pilgrim Knight, gentle as Chaucer's,) and
- beheld on his journey the shining of the Eternal City,--might be set
- beside words of the Mystics as shewing, perhaps, through their very
- simplicity, the oneness of truth that there is to see, and the oneness
- of souls that see it. Here are convictions that the Cause of love,
- felt within, "must be Jesus' Good Spirit"; comfort in discovering of
- death's unreality (for if only the body, not the spirit, dies, "Oh,
- then it is only _pretending-dying_!"); a flash of discernment, perhaps,
- as to the passing away of lifeless evil since although, to the child,
- indeed "it is a pity that some one did not come and kill the devil;
- and then he would be dead," yet he has his own eschatology: "Well,
- when _we_ are all dead, the devil will be dead too." More significant
- is a sudden overawed realisation of the great universe (setting pause
- to his own run round in play), one door to a quick perception in the
- child's devout spirit of analogy binding truths unseen by sense: "Is
- this world always going round, _now_?" ('Yes.') "It stays still!
- still!--Jesus is looking down now: we don't see Him."--Here, too, are
- habitual references to the things that are _meant to be_,--musings
- over the goodness and knowledge, the braveness and courtesy "meant to
- be" in a _man_; and here is a grateful, trusting sense of the real
- 'kindness' of 'wild' creatures and of hurting remedies. Many of those
- simple utterances, careless yet arresting like a blackbird's song, and
- personal with the ardent love and clear reason of a child faithfully
- living and bravely dying, seem to attest a kinship with seers of
- truth to whom longer trial has offered a sterner strength of complex
- thinking, for wider service here, but who, although they may have
- learnt thus '_more_' in the knowledge of love, "shall never know nor
- learn _other_ thing without end."--"I understood none higher stature in
- this life than childhood."
- "It is not growing like a tree
- In bulk, doth make man better be.
- * * * * *
- A lily of a day
- Is fairer far in May,
- Although it fall and die that night,
- It was the plant and flower of Light."
- For all of the Company of saints have the sight of One Vision, and be
- it in the steadfast fulfilment of labour, or from out of the merriment
- of play,--through the strong, bright peace of endurance, or the silent
- acquiescence of the will, led along valleys of darkness,--or again in
- some swift rush of prayer into the morning light,--_all_ of the saints,
- the babe and the ancient, beholding "the Blissful Countenance" say
- "with one voice": "IT IS WELL." "_Amen. Amen._"
- [8] "Catholic Mystics of the Middle Ages." _Edinburgh Review_, October
- 1896.
- [9] In reference to introspection M. Maeterlinck speaks of Ruysbroeck
- as "the one analytical mystic." _Ruysbroeck and the Mystics_, p. 19.
- [10] In ch. vii. de Cressy's "the Seal of her Ring" gives a misreading.
- PART III
- THE THEME OF THE BOOK
- "The phase of thought or feeling which we call Mysticism has its
- origin in ... that dim consciousness of the _beyond_ which is part of
- our nature as human beings.... Mysticism arises when we try to bring
- this higher consciousness into relation with the other contents of our
- minds. Religious Mysticism may be defined as the attempt to realise
- the presence of the living God in the soul and in nature, or, more
- generally, as the attempt to realise in thought and feeling, the
- immanence of the temporal in the eternal, and of the eternal in the
- temporal."--W. R. Inge, _Christian Mysticism_. The Bampton Lectures for
- 1900, p. 4.
- "What is Paradise? All things that are; for all are goodly and
- pleasant and therefore may fitly be called a Paradise. It is said
- also that Paradise is an outer Court of Heaven. Even so this world
- is an outer court of the eternal, or of Eternity, and especially
- whatever in time, or any temporal creature manifesteth or remindeth
- us of God or Eternity; for the creature is a guide and a path to God
- and Eternity."[1] "God is althing that is gode, as to my sight," says
- Julian, "and the godenes that althing hath, it is He" (viii.).
- "_Truth seeth God_," and every man exercising the human gift of
- Reason may in the sight and in the seeing of truths, attain to some
- sight of God as Truth. But "_Wisdom beholdeth God_," and although
- the enlightenment of the Spirit of Wisdom for the discernment of
- vital truth is a grace that is granted in needful measure to him that
- seeks to be guided by it, it is perhaps those receivers of grace that
- are mystics by nature and habit that are the most ready in reaching
- forward while still on earth to Wisdom's fullest and most immediate
- beholding of God as All in all. For theirs in the largest (and it
- may be the highest) efficiency, and in the fullest accordance with
- man's first gift of "Reason Natural," is the further gift that Julian
- calls "_Mind_": the gift of a certain spiritual sensitiveness whereby
- they are quick to take impression of eternal things unseen (seeing
- them either within or beyond the things of time that are seen) with
- surrender of self to partake of their life. For in this Beholding of
- Wisdom, response of the heart in purity and insight of the imagination
- in faith enhance each other, while the vision of the soul through both
- takes clearness.
- The mystic, who sees the wide-ruling oneness of God with all that is
- good--and thus, as the Mystics say, with all that _is_,--may begin at
- any point the beholding of Goodness and therein the beholding of God.
- "He is in the mydde poynt of all thyng, and all He doeth" (xi.). It is
- in the way of those thus fully endowed for the reaching to truth in its
- highest wisdom here, while they walk amongst the many manifestations of
- earth, to take them as delicate partial signs instinct with a single
- meaning. Here is mystical perception:--
- "To see a world in a grain of sand,
- And a heaven in a wild flower;
- Hold infinity in the palm of your hand,
- And eternity in an hour";[2]
- by a blackbird's sudden song overhear, "in woodlands within," a joy
- out of the heart of the Life of life.[3] Speaking of the spiritual
- sight Julian relates: "I saw God in a point.--by which sight I saw
- that He is in all things." To the mystical soul, quiet to listen to
- "the music of the spheres," all sweet accordant sounds are singing
- _Holy, Holy, Holy_; to the mystical soul, "full of eyes within"--like
- those _Creatures of Life_ seen on the plain by the prophet of the Law
- of life as renewed for Hope, and seen in the heights by the herald
- of the Evangel of life as fulfilled in Love--all symmetrical sights
- are as doors that are opened in Heaven. But it is most of all in the
- music and the symmetry made of adverse life and death by the power of
- love, as this is seen from highest to lowest, from lowest to highest,
- that the Revelation of God as Love that is All in all is received. And
- looking thereon in the highest manifestation, the manifestation of
- Christ, which is made for all men, the mystics meet other beholders,
- who are not called "mystics," yet who have not merely in greater or
- less degree, with them, the common gift of Reason, but, after their
- different manner and in their own share, the gift of the feeling
- "Mind." For both from the seeing of Truth and from the beholding of
- Wisdom comes the "holy wondering delight in God" that is simply delight
- of love in Love. So they of the East and they of the West sit down
- together to partake of the Bread and the Wine of the Table of God in
- His Kingdom.
- There is no other than one Food of the Divine Life consecrated and
- made ready and offered to man for his human spirit to feed on;
- but the Christian mystic finds an offering of that Food, which is
- the sanctified Life of the Christ of God, not only in its constant
- presentment to the spirit alone, by the Spirit of God through Christ.
- To him, as to other Christians, the sight and the offering of the
- Life in God is given in that memorial, mediate, expectant Sacrament
- consecrated for the spirit's nurture through those elected Symbols of
- sense that are the most perfect and sacred symbols because in their
- earlier, natural use they most immediately minister to the whole human
- life on earth of the Giver and of the receivers. But along with this
- chosen Sacrament, and as one with it, there is shewn to the mystic the
- Life Divine in diverse manners of working: he sees God's Christ from
- afar, _fore-sees_ the Eucharistic Sacrament of His most sacred Death
- and Life, _now_ raised in the Bread and the Wine on high,--seeing its
- promise low in the ground in the earliest, ageless life of the wheat
- and the vine: seed cast away, bruised corn of wheat, and dying Body,
- and broken Bread, and daily obedience; a hidden root, crushed fruit of
- the vine, and Blood poured forth, and uplifted Wine, and joy of Love
- over Death: one Life.
- Sometimes there is for the mystics a partaking of these lesser
- "wayside sacraments," sometimes a turning aside from their symbols;
- sometimes the old song of life in the lower creation awakens singing,
- sometimes it scarcely is heard. But always the _spirit_ of nature's
- signs as interpreted in Man, above all in Christ, lays its claim on
- the soul; always as sung by the chorus of human spirits that live on
- the "Righteousness, Peace, and Joy" of the Will of God, the New Song
- of Life through Death has in it a summons and receives from one and
- another here, passing through much tribulation, its fuller concord of
- human achievement, or at least the desirous _Amen_. So whether the
- mystic dwell much or little with the sights and sounds of sense, those
- things that are seen and heard by the _soul_ bear to him the command
- of his home, and the merest doorway glimpses, the echoes most distant,
- making their proffer of more and more within and beyond, say _Come_.
- "I give you the end of a golden string:
- Only wind it into a ball,
- It will lead you in at Heaven's Gate,
- Built in Jerusalem wall."[4]
- (Although this "following on to know," this winding of the truth
- caught hold of into a "perfect round" of thought and will and life, is
- probably not more easy for the mystics than for other people.
- "Amore, amor, tu sei cerchio rotondo!"[5])
- God is in all; but "our soul may never have rest in things that are
- beneath itself" (lxvii.). "Well I wot," says Julian, "that heaven and
- earth and all that is made is great and large, fair and good," yet "all
- that is made" is seen as a little thing, the size of a hazel nut, held
- in the palm of her hand, when along with it her spiritual sight beholds
- the Maker. And though we may find the Maker in all things, we find
- Him, both as Maker and Restorer, first and best, First and Last, in
- the soul. There He is _Alpha_, there _Omega_. "It is readier to us to
- come to the knowing of God than to know our own Soul" (in its fullest
- powers). "For our soul is so deep-grounded in God and so endlessly
- treasured, that we may not come to the knowing thereof till we have
- first knowing of God, which is the Maker, to whom it is oned." And yet,
- "we may never come to full knowing of God till we know first clearly
- our own soul" (lvi.). The knowledge begins with God, but it begins
- with Him in the lowest place of the soul rescued from sin by mercy and
- entered by grace. "For Himself is nearest and meekest, highest and
- lowest, and doeth all" (lxxx.). To the soul that looks on Christ a
- remembrance rises of its own "fair nature" made in His image; yet "our
- Lord of His mercy sheweth us our sin and our feebleness by the sweet
- gracious light of Himself" (lxxviii.). Thus in the working of grace
- the soul comes to the knowledge both of its higher and lower parts.
- For in finding in itself both a natural response to the working of
- grace by its love and its longing after God, and a contrariness to the
- goodness of grace by its often failing and falling, it experiences both
- the action of the "Godly Will" (which is within it as a part of, and
- a gift from, its higher nature, "the Substance") and the action of a
- "beastly will" (from the simple animal nature) which can will no moral
- good and which, "failing of love," falls into sin: whereby comes pain,
- with all the "travail" of good and evil in conflict during the course
- of restoration. But it is only when the Sense-soul (wherein the higher
- will must overcome the lower) is at last brought up to heaven, enriched
- by all the profits of tribulation, and is united to the Substance
- waiting there, "hid with Christ in God," that we come to the perfect
- knowledge of God. For that knowledge, perfect in kind though always
- growing, can only begin when, being in our "full powers" and "all fully
- holy," we come to know clearly our own united perfected Soul. This
- seems to be Julian's view (lvi., etc.).
- Julian says elsewhere that we have in us here such a "medley" of good
- and evil that sometimes we hardly know of others or of ourselves
- wherein we stand, but that each "holy assent" that we make (by the
- Godly Will) to the grace and will of God, is a witness that we are of
- God. A witness to our sonship, it might be said; and perhaps, taking
- Julian's view for the time, we might think that as the Lost Son "came
- to himself," so the soul comes to the consciousness of the Godly Will;
- that as he arose and came to his Father and found Him, or rather was
- found by his Father, so the soul receives the healing of Christ in
- Mercy and the leading of the Holy Ghost in Grace; and that as at last,
- the son not only found his father but found his lost sonship--yet a
- better sonship than ever he had known before--so the soul comes at last
- to find, more and more fully, that new sonship which is of its nature,
- yet is more than its nature. For it finds the nature oneness which by
- creation it had with the Son of God, enhanced and for ever sustained by
- grace.
- Sometimes, truly, the Mystical doctrine leads by tracks that are not
- easily followed, but it is perhaps only when her views are regarded in
- single parts, that any harm could be found in Julian's statements--all
- qualified as they are by her "as to my sight." At first indeed it may
- startle one to read of her saints that are known in the Church and in
- Heaven "by their sins," to hear that the wounds left by sin are made
- "medicines" on earth and turned to "worships" in Heaven; but then
- we remember the joy that shall be in Heaven over "one sinner that
- repenteth," the love that loves much because much is forgiven. And yet
- we remember the little children in _their_ high faith and love and
- innocent days; and of such is the Kingdom of God. But the Child, with
- many "fair virtues," albeit imperfect, was likewise Julian's type of
- the Christian soul: "I understood no higher stature in this life than
- Childhood."
- "To know our own soul"--it behoveth us to know our own soul--our
- high-nature soul, which is enclosed in God, and also our soul on the
- earth which Christ-Jesus inhabits, which has in it the "medley": "we
- have in us our Lord Jesus uprisen, we have in us the wretchedness and
- the mischief of Adam's falling, dying" (lii.). But elsewhere Julian
- gives this name "our own soul" to the Church, seeing the Church
- likewise as the dwelling and working-place of Christ (lxii.). She has
- been speaking of the Divine Wisdom being as it were the Mother of the
- soul, and now she seems to lead us to the Church as to the Nursery
- where He tends His children. "For one single person may oftentimes
- be broken, but the whole Body of Holy Church was never broken, nor
- ever shall be, without end. And therefore a sure thing it is, a good
- and a gracious, to will meekly and mightily to be fastened to our
- Mother, Holy Church, that is Christ Jesus. For the Food of Mercy that
- is His dearworthy blood and precious water is plenteous to make us
- fair and clean; the sweet gracious hands of our Mother be ready and
- diligently about us. For He in all this working useth the office of a
- kind nurse that hath not else to do but to entend about the salvation
- of her child" (lxi.). Each soul is indeed the soul of a person and
- most intimately knows itself in its personal experience, through which
- indeed alone it can come to knowledge of others. Yet the single soul
- knows itself _best_ in the souls of all the saints, in the fellowship
- of the "Blessed Common," where every virtue is found, not in each, at
- this time, but in _all_--not now in the perfect height nor the fairest
- flowering, but at growth in that ground where each plant holds some
- likeness to Christ.
- With Julian the Christian Faith is not a thing added to the Mystical
- sight: these are, as again and again she says, seen both as one. It
- is the _inherent_ Christianity of her system that makes her teaching
- always, in a large way, practical. For the system came at first to
- be seen by prayerful searching made out of her practical need of an
- answer to the problem of sin and sorrow; the Mystical Vision came with
- "contrition, compassion, and longing after God," those wounds that
- her contrite, pitiful, longing heart had desired should be made more
- deep in her life. It is through the work of grace that Julian reaches
- back to the gift of nature, its ground; and from the depths of this
- root-ground she rises soon again to the "springing and spreading"
- grace. So in the First of her Shewings the "higher" truth is seen:
- "we are all in Him beclosed," but in the Last--the conclusion and
- confirmation of all--the lower, yet nearer, truth, which _all_ may
- know: "and He is beclosed in us." And speaking of this dwelling within
- the soul she speaks of His working us all into Him: "in which working
- He willeth that we be His helpers, giving to Him all our entending,
- learning His lores, keeping His laws, desiring that all be done that He
- doeth; truly trusting In Him" (lvii.).
- Julian had prayed to feel Christ's dying pains, if it should be God's
- will, in order that she might feel compassion, and the visionary sight
- of His pain in the Face of the Crucifix filled her with pain as it grew
- upon her. "How might any pain be more to me than to see Him that is
- all my life, all my bliss, and all my joy suffer?" Yet the Shewing of
- Pain was but the introduction to, and for a time the accompaniment of,
- the Revelation; the Revelation, itself, as a whole, was of Love--the
- Goodness or Active Love of God. So the First Shewing, as the Ground of
- all the rest, was a large view of this Goodness as the Ground of all
- Being. Although through these earlier Shewings the Saviour's bodily
- pain is felt by Julian so fully in "mind" that she feels it indeed
- as if it were bodily anguish she bore, it is in this very experience
- that the shewing of Joy is made to her spirit. So when in the opening
- of the Revelation she tells of beholding the Passion of Christ, her
- first unexpected word is of sudden joy from the inner sight of the
- Love that God is: the sight of the Trinity:--"And in the same Shewing
- suddenly the Trinity fulfilled my heart most of joy. (For where JESUS
- appeareth, the blessed Trinity is understood, as to my sight.)" And
- even as Julian finds afterwards that the Last Word of the Revelation is
- the same as the First: "_Thou shalt not be overcome_," so the opening
- Sight already shews her that which shall be revealed all through, for
- learning of "more in the same," and uplifts her heart to the fulness
- of joy that is shewn at the close. For she feels that this shock, as
- it were, of Revelation--this sudden joy of seeing Love in the midst of
- earth's evil, beyond and beneath and in the pain that is passing, is
- the entrance into the joy of the Lord. "Suddenly the Trinity fulfilled
- my heart with utmost joy.--And so I understood it shall be in heaven
- without end to all that shall come there" (iv.). So at the close, when
- the vision was not of the Love Divine in that bending Face beneath the
- Crown of Thorns, but of the human love that shall spring up to meet
- the Divine out of the lowness of earth,--the vision of how from this
- body of death, as from an unsightly, shapeless, and stagnant mass of
- quagmire, there "sprang a full fair creature, a little Child, fully
- shapen and formed, agile and lively, whiter than lily; which swiftly
- glided up into heaven"--the spiritual shewing to the soul is this:
- "_Suddenly thou shalt be taken from all thy pain ... and thou shalt
- come up above and thou shalt have me ... and thou shalt be fulfilled
- of love and of bliss_" (lxiv.). And so in that early experience of
- Julian's when in her love, abandoned to pity and worship, she would
- not look up to Heaven from the Cross, it was also the inward sight by
- the higher part of her soul of the higher part of Christ's life, that
- Heavenly Love that could only rejoice, that overcame her frailty of
- flesh unwilling to suffer, and made her choose "only Jesus in weal and
- in woe." "Thou art my Heaven" (xix.-lv.). "All the Trinity wrought
- in the Passion of Jesus Christ," though only the Son of the Virgin
- suffered, and in seeing this, Julian saw "the Bliss of Christ's works,"
- "the joy that is in the blissful Trinity [by reason] of the Passion of
- Christ"; "the Father willing all, the Son working all, the Holy Ghost
- confirming all."
- This complexity of the Divine-Human life in the Son of God, this union
- in Christ Jesus of serene untouched blessedness in the heavenly regions
- of His spirit with His bearing, in the active joy of a "glad giver,"
- all the sin and sorrow of the world, is revealed as the comfort and
- confidence of man, whose own deepest experience is love that suffers,
- whose highest worship therefore must be of Love that is strong to
- suffer.
- It was a double joy that was shewn in Christ besides the bliss of the
- impassible Godhead, which is the bliss of Love without all time and
- beyond all deeds. For there was joy in the Passion itself: "_If I
- might suffer more, I would suffer more_," and joy in its fruits: "_If
- thou art pleased, I am pleased_." Thus, too, we are told of three ways
- in which our Lord would have us behold His Passion: first, "the hard
- pains He suffered on earth"; second, "the love that made Him to suffer
- passeth as far all His pains as Heaven is above earth"; third, "the joy
- and the bliss that made Him to be well-satisfied in it."--"With a glad
- countenance He looked unto His wounded Side, rejoicing" (xxii., xxiii.,
- xxiv.).
- From the sight of Love that is higher than pain comes the sight of
- Love that is deeper than sin. Julian had had the mystical shewing that
- God is all that is good,[6] and is only good, is the life of all that
- is, and doeth all that is done, and she had reasoned, as others before
- her had reasoned, that therefore "sin hath no substance" and "sin is
- no deed." But perhaps it is those that are most concerned with God in
- creature things, that suffer most shaking from the sight of evil. Those
- that seek God's Kingdom in this present world, finding "the dark places
- of the earth" full of the habitations of cruelty, have continually the
- enemy as with a sword in their bones saying within them: "Where is now
- thy God?" "I saw," says Julian, "that He is in all things. I beheld and
- considered, with a soft dread, and thought: _What is sin?_" (xi.). So
- also it is immediately after the coming of the mystical Shewing made
- "yet more highly": "_It is I, it is I, it is I that am all_," that the
- memory of her own experience is brought to her and she sees how in
- her longings after God, who is all the time so close about us, around
- us and within,--she had always been hindered from seeing and reaching
- Him fully by the darkening, disturbing power of sin. "And so I looked
- generally upon us all, and methought: _If sin had not been, we should
- have all been clean, and like to our Lord as He made us_" (xxvii.).
- Thus came again the stirring of that old question over which "afore
- this time often I wondered," with "mourning and sorrow," "why the
- beginning of sin was not letted--for then, methought, all should have
- been well."
- To this darkness, crying to God, the light came first as by a soft
- general dawning of comfort for faith. "_Sin is behoveable_ (it behoved
- that sin should be suffered to rise) _but all shall be well, and all
- shall be well, and all manner of things shall be well._" Yet Julian,
- unable to take comfort to her heart over that which was still so dark
- to her intellect, stands "beholding things general, troublously and
- mourning," saying thus in her thoughts: "_Ah good Lord, how might all
- be_ well, for the great hurt that is come by sin to the creature?"
- (xxix.).
- The answer to this double question as to sin and pain is the central
- theme of the Revelation, though much is still hidden and much is but
- dimly revealed as yet to faith. In brief account, the sight, enough
- for us now, is this: "Mercy, by love, suffereth us to fail [of love]
- in measure, and in as much as we fail, in so much we die: for it needs
- must be that we die in so much as we fail of the sight and feeling of
- God that is our life.... And grace worketh our dreadful failing into
- plenteous, endless solace, and grace worketh our shameful falling
- into high, worshipful rising; and grace worketh our sorrowful dying
- into holy, blissful life" (xlviii.). "By the assay of this falling we
- shall have an high marvellous knowing of love in God, without end. For
- strong and marvellous is that love that may not and will not be broken
- for trespass. And this is one understanding of our profit. Another
- is the lowness and meekness that we shall get by the sight of our
- falling" (lxi.). "And by this meek knowing after this manner, through
- contrition and grace, we shall be broken from all that is not our Lord.
- And then shall our blessed Saviour perfectly heal us and one us to Him"
- (lxxviii.).
- _Theodidacta, Profunda, Ecstatica_--so Julian has been designated;
- perhaps she might in fuller truth be called _Theodidacta, Profunda,
- Evangelica_. She is indeed a mystic, evangelical, practical. With all
- her fellow-Christians and in the most deeply personal concern she
- looks with a tender mind on the redeeming work of God by Christ in the
- "glorious satisfaction" ("_Asseth_"), and in fervent response of love
- and thankfulness trusts in the blessed Passion of Christ, and in His
- sure keeping, and in all the restoring, fulfilling work by the Holy
- Ghost. But after the Mystical manner she seeks "the beyond": that is,
- while in no way leaving the works of mercy and grace she seeks to go
- back to the ground or source of them, the Goodness of God,--yes, to God
- Himself. "I could not have perceived of the part of Mercy but as it
- were alone in Love." "The Passion was a noble worshipful deed done in a
- time, but Love was without beginning, is, and shall be without ending."
- The Mystical Vision is that which in outward nature sees the unseen
- within the seen, but it is also that which in spiritual things sees
- behind and beyond the temporal means, the eternal causes and ends
- (vi.). And it is surely here in the spiritual things, in the heart
- and centre of human existence, in the stress of sin and suffering,
- rather than amongst the gentle growing things, and flaming lights,
- and songs, and blameless creatures of Nature that the Beatific Vision
- on earth is at its highest. For here are found united the _Evangel_
- and the _Vision_ and the _Life_ of love. "There the soul is highest,
- noblest, and worthiest, where it is lowest, meekest, and mildest":
- it is not in nature's goodness alone that we have our life, "all our
- life is in three," in nature, in mercy, in grace; "whereof we have
- meekness, mildness, patience and pity" (lviii., lix.). Man's "spirit,"
- the higher nature that Julian talks of, may indeed be there in the
- Heavenly places, as an infant's angel lying in the Father's arms,
- always beholding His Face in love's silence of waiting; but here in
- earthly places is the Prodigal Son returning, here too is the Father's
- embrace, and here is His earliest greeting of the son that was lost and
- is found. And already here in the Kingdom of Heaven on Earth (where
- _all_ grow pure in the sonship obedience of Jesus Christ), are those
- that are kept from the first as little children, taken up in His arms
- and suffered to sing their Hosannahs, which perfect His praise.
- The Revelation of Love is all centred in the Passion, and looking on
- the Passion in time the soul sees, in vision, the Lamb that was slain
- from the foundation of the world, the mind conceives how before all
- time the Divine Love took to itself in the Wisdom of God the mode of
- Manhood, and in time created Man in the same, and how thus God could
- be and do all that man could be and do, could exercise Love Divine in
- human Faith and Courage: could "take our flesh" and live on the earth
- as "the Man, Christ-Jesus," "in all points tempted like as we are,"
- finding His daily Bread in the will of the Father, drinking with joy
- of the Wine of life in the evening cup of Death. "Pain is passing,"
- says Julian, but in passing it leads forth love in man to its deepest
- living, its fairest height of pureness and strength and fulfilment.
- Thus it behoved the Captain of man's salvation to have His perfection
- here through suffering. It is the _Lamb_ in the midst of the Throne,
- the Almighty Love that was slain, that is Shepherd to the Martyrs,
- leading them unto living fountains of waters. He that bore the yoke
- gives rest to the heavy-laden; blessed is He that mourned: for He
- comforteth with His comfort.
- So in the Mediæval story,[8] the highest Mystical Vision, the sight of
- the Holy Grail, comes only to him that is pure from self, and looks on
- the bleeding wound that sin has left in man, and is compassionate, and
- gives himself to service and healing.--_Can ye_ drink _of the Cup I
- drank of?_--Love's Cup that is Death and Life.--
- Wine of Love's joy I see thy cup
- Red to the trembling brim
- With Life outpoured, once lifted up,
- I drink, remembering Him.--
- It is the mourners who are comforted: those that bear griefs of their
- own, or bear griefs of others fully, do not despair, though the mere
- onlooker may well despair. Thus the compassionate Julian's vision is of
- _Comfort_--comfort not for herself "in special," but for "the general
- Man"--for all her fellow-Christians. She who had long time mourned
- for the hurt that is come by sin to the creature, came to the sight
- of comfort not by turning her eyes away but by deeper compassion that
- found through the very wounds the healing of Love on earth, the glory
- of Love in Heaven. She was "filled with compassion for the Passion of
- Christ," and thus she saw _His joy_; so afterwards, she tells, "I was
- fulfilled in part with compassion of all mine even-Christians, for that
- well, well-beloved people that shall be saved. For God's servants,
- Holy Church, shall be shaken in sorrow and anguish and tribulation
- in this world, as men shake a cloth in the wind. And as to this our
- Lord answered in this manner: A great thing shall I make hereof in
- Heaven of endless worship and everlasting joys. Yea so far forth as
- this I saw: that our Lord joyeth of the tribulations of His servants,
- with ruth and compassion." "For He saith: _I shall wholly break you
- of your vain affections and of your vicious pride: and after that I
- shall together gather you, and make you mild and meek, clean and holy,
- by oneing to me_" (xxviii.). Sin is indeed "the sharpest scourge,"
- "viler and more painful than hell, without comparison," "an horrible
- thing to see for the loved soul that would be all fair and shining in
- the sight of God, as Nature and Grace teacheth." And darkness, which
- overhangs the soul while here it is "meddling with any part of sin,"
- "so that we see not clearly the Blissful Countenance of our Lord," is
- a lasting, life-long "natural penance" from God, the feeling of which
- indeed does not depart with actual sinning: "for ever the more clearly
- that the soul seeth this Blissful Countenance by grace of loving, the
- more it longeth to see it in fulness" (lxxii.). All this is in man's
- experience, with many other pains--pains which in individual lives have
- no proportionate relation to sin, though, in general, "sin is cause of
- pain" and "pain purgeth."--("_For I tell thee, howsoever thou do thou
- shalt have woe_"), (lxxvii., xxvii.). But the Comfort Revealed shews
- how sin, which "hath no part of being" and "could not be known but by
- the pain it is cause of," (sin which in this view may be compared to
- the nails of the Passion--mere dead matter, though with power to wound
- unto death for a time the blessed Life), sin, which is failure of human
- love,--leaves, notwithstanding all its horror, an opening for a fuller
- influx of Divine love and strength.[9] And as to _darkness_, "seeking
- is as good as beholding, for the time that God will suffer the soul to
- be in travail" (x.). And as to tribulation of every kind, "the Passion
- of our Lord is comfort to us against all this, and so is His blessed
- will" (xxvii.).
- The parts may seem to come by chance and to be "amiss," but the whole,
- and in the whole each part, is ordered. "And when we be all brought
- up above, then shall we see clearly in God the secret things which be
- now hid to us. Then shall none of us be stirred to say: _Lord, if it
- had been thus, then it had been full well_: but we shall all say with
- _one_ voice: _Lord, blessed mayst Thou be, for it is thus: it is well;
- and now we see verily that all things are done as it was then ordained
- before that anything was made_" (xi., lxxxv.). "Moreover He that shall
- be our bliss when we are there, is our Keeper while we are here"; and
- the Last Word of the Revelation is the same as the First; "_Thou shalt
- not be overcome._" "He said not: _Thou shalt not be tempested, thou
- shalt not be travailed, thou shalt not be distressed_; but He said:
- _Thou shalt not be overcome._"
- This is God's comfort. And that here, meanwhile, we should take His
- comfort is Julian's chief desire and instruction. For Julian, who
- speaking so much of sin as a strange and troubling sight, yet gives as
- examples of sin only a slothful mistrusting despondency,--speaks indeed
- of faith and hope and charity, compassion and meekness, but scarcely
- _exhorts_ except to the cheerful enduring of tribulation. So she gives
- counsel as to "rejoicing more in His whole love than sorrowing in our
- often fallings"; as to "living gladly and merrily for love's sake"
- in our penance of darkness (lxxii.-lxxxi.). And in general, for all
- experiences of life, "It is God's will that we take His promises and
- His comfortings as largely and as mightily as we may take them, and
- also He willeth that we take our abiding and our troubles as lightly as
- we may take them, and set them at nought" (lxiv., lxv., xv.).
- "We are all one in comfort," says Julian, "all the gracious comfort
- was for all mine even-Christians." Sin separates, pain isolates, but
- salvation and comfort unite.
- And lastly, in this mystical vision of the oneness of man with God
- in Christ, man is seen not only as united in himself in the diverse
- parts of his nature, and as one with his fellow man, but as joined
- to that which is below him. How often of one good and another, as of
- that fair and sacred "service of the Mother"--"nearest, readiest, and
- surest"--"in the creatures by whom it is done," do we hear Julian's
- confident word of Sacramental declaration: "_It is Christ_." "For God
- is all that is good, as to my sight, and God hath made all that is
- made: and he that loveth generally all his even-Christians for God, he
- loveth all that is. For in Mankind that shall be saved is comprehended
- all: that is to say, all that is made and the Maker of all. For in Man
- is God, and God is in all. And I hope," adds Julian, in words that
- are fitting to take for her courteous, her tender, "_Good Speed_" ere
- we pass to her book--altogether like her as they are, even to the
- careful, conditional "if" (for _nothing,_ not even comfort, behoves
- to be "overdone much"), "I hope by the grace of God he that beholdeth
- it thus shall be truly taught and mightily comforted, if he needeth
- comfort" (ix.).
- _Deus ubique est, et totus ubique est._ All things are gathered up in
- Man, and Man is gathered up in Christ; and Christ is gathered up in the
- Bosom of the Father. So the world of the lower creation makes promise:
- _All things are yours_; and the Church says over its offering, lifted
- up: _Ye are Christ's_; and from the stillness the voice of peace is
- heard: _And Christ is God's_. "All the promises of God in HIM are _Yea_
- and in HIM _Amen_, unto the glory of God by us." All the promises of
- God: the blossom that floated to the ground; "the lily of a day" that
- "fell and died that night"; the "little Child, whiter than lily, that
- swiftly glided up into Heaven"--all the utterances silenced here--in
- Him are _Yea_ and in Him _Amen: Yea_ on earth and _Amen_ for ever. "_He
- turneth the shadow of death into the morning._"
- _May_ 1901.
- [1] _Theologia Germanica_, Chap. 1.
- [2] Blake's Poems.
- [3] _Memorabilia of Jesus_, by W. Peyton, p. 33.
- [4] Gilchrist's _Life and Works of William Blake_, vol. ii.
- [5] _Amor de Caritade_, by Jacopone da Todi (formerly ascribed to S.
- Francis of Assisi).
- [6] "_Quid me interrogas de bono? Unus est bonus, Deus._"--S. Matt.
- xix. 17.
- [8] _A Key to Wagner's Parsifal_, by H. von Wolzogen, tr. by Ashton
- Ellis.
- [9] Goodness is Active Love--love that moves. Drawing back from the
- finite creature, as a wave from the shore, it "suffers" sin's void
- to appear. But this lack of itself is allowed for the time, that so
- returning again in its force, to which evil is nothing, it may cover
- the desolate nature with deepness and highness and fulness unknown
- before. (See lvii.).
- REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE
- CHAPTER I
- "A Revelation of Love--in Sixteen Shewings"
- This is a Revelation of Love that Jesus Christ, our endless bliss, made
- in Sixteen Shewings, or Revelations particular.
- Of the which the First is of His precious crowning with thorns;
- and therewith was comprehended and specified the Trinity, with the
- Incarnation, and unity betwixt God and man's soul; with many fair
- shewings of endless wisdom and teachings of love: in which all the
- Shewings that follow be grounded and oned.[1]
- The Second is the changing of colour of His fair face in token of His
- dearworthy[2] Passion.
- The Third is that our Lord God, Allmighty Wisdom, All-Love, right as
- verily as He hath made everything that is, all-so verily He doeth and
- worketh all-thing that is done.
- The Fourth is the scourging of His tender body, with plenteous shedding
- of His blood.
- The Fifth is that the Fiend is overcome by the precious Passion of
- Christ.
- The Sixth is the worshipful[3] thanking by our Lord God in which He
- rewardeth His blessed servants in Heaven.
- The Seventh is [our] often feeling of weal and woe; (the feeling
- of weal is gracious touching and lightening, with true assuredness
- of endless joy; the feeling of woe is temptation by heaviness and
- irksomeness of our fleshly living;) with ghostly understanding that we
- are kept all as securely in Love in woe as in weal, by the Goodness of
- God.
- The Eighth is of the last pains of Christ, and His cruel dying.
- The Ninth is of the pleasing which is in the Blissful Trinity by the
- hard Passion of Christ and His rueful dying: in which joy and pleasing
- He willeth that we be solaced and mirthed[4] with Him, till when we
- come to the fulness in Heaven.
- The Tenth is, our Lord Jesus sheweth in love His blissful heart even
- cloven in two, rejoicing.
- The Eleventh is an high ghostly Shewing of His dearworthy Mother.
- The Twelfth is that our Lord is most worthy Being.
- The Thirteenth is that our Lord God willeth we have great regard to
- all the deeds that He hath done: in the great nobleness of the making
- of all things; and the excellency of man's making, which is above all
- his works; and the precious Amends[5] that He hath made for man's sin,
- turning all our blame into endless worship.[6] In which Shewing also
- our Lord saith: _Behold and see! For by the same Might, Wisdom, and
- Goodness that I have done all this, by the same Might, Wisdom, and
- Goodness I shall make well all that is not well; and thou shalt see
- it._ And in this He willeth that we keep us in the Faith and truth of
- Holy Church, not desiring to see into His secret things now, save as it
- belongeth to us in this life.
- The Fourteenth is that our Lord is the Ground of our Prayer. Herein
- were seen two properties: the one is rightful prayer, the other is
- steadfast trust; which He willeth should both be alike large; and thus
- our prayer pleaseth Him and He of His Goodness fulfilleth it.
- The Fifteenth is that we shall suddenly be taken from all our pain and
- from all our woe, and of His Goodness we shall come up above, where we
- shall have our Lord Jesus for our meed and be fulfilled with joy and
- bliss in Heaven.
- The Sixteenth is that the Blissful Trinity, our Maker, in Christ Jesus
- our Saviour endlessly dwelleth in our soul, worshipfully ruling and
- protecting all things, us mightily and wisely saving and keeping, for
- love; and we shall not be overcome of our Enemy.
- [1] made one, united.
- [2] precious, honoured.
- [3] honour-bestowing.
- [4] made glad.
- [5] MS. "Asseth" = Satisfaction, making-enough.
- [6] honour, glory.
- CHAPTER II
- "A simple creature unlettered.--Which creature afore desired three
- gifts of God"
- These Revelations were shewed to a simple creature unlettered,[1] the
- year of our Lord 1373, the Thirteenth day of May. Which creature [had]
- afore desired three gifts of God. The First was mind of His Passion;
- the Second was bodily sickness in youth, at thirty years of age; the
- Third was to have of God's gift three wounds.
- As to the First, methought I had some feeling in the Passion of Christ,
- but yet I desired more by the grace of God. Methought I would have
- been that time with Mary Magdalene, and with other that were Christ's
- lovers, and therefore I desired a bodily sight wherein I might have
- more knowledge of the bodily pains of our Saviour and of the compassion
- of our Lady and of all His true lovers that saw, that time, His pains.
- For I would be one of them and suffer with Him. Other sight nor shewing
- of God desired I never none, till the soul were disparted from the
- body. The cause of this petition was that after the shewing I should
- have the more true mind in the Passion of Christ.
- The Second came to my mind with contrition; [I] freely desiring that
- sickness [to be] so hard as to death, that I might in that sickness
- receive all my rites of Holy Church, myself thinking that I should die,
- and that all creatures might suppose the same that saw me: for I would
- have no manner of comfort of earthly life. In this sickness I desired
- to have all manner of pains bodily and ghostly that I should have if
- I should die, (with all the dreads and tempests of the fiends) except
- the outpassing of the soul. And this I meant[2] for [that] I would be
- purged, by the mercy of God, and afterward live more to the worship of
- God because of that sickness. And that for the more furthering[3] in my
- death: for I desired to be soon with my God.
- These two desires of the Passion and the sickness I desired with a
- condition, saying thus: _Lord, Thou knowest what I would,--if it be
- Thy will that I have it--; and if it be not Thy will, good Lord, be not
- displeased: for I will nought but as Thou wilt._
- For the Third [petition], by the grace of God and teaching of Holy
- Church I conceived a mighty desire to receive three wounds in my life:
- that is to say, the wound of very contrition, the wound of kind[4]
- compassion, and the wound of steadfast[5] longing toward God.[6] And
- all this last petition I asked without any condition.
- These two desires aforesaid passed from my mind, but the third dwelled
- with me continually.
- [1] "that cowde no letter" = unskilled in letters.
- [2] thought of, designed.
- [3] MS. "speed."
- [4] _i.e._ natural.
- [5] MS. "wilful" = earnest, with set will.
- [6] For these wounds see xvii. p. 40, xxvii. p. 56, xxviii., lxxii. and
- xxxix.
- CHAPTER III
- "I desired to suffer with Him"
- And when I was thirty years old and a half, God sent me a bodily
- sickness, in which I lay three days and three nights; and on the fourth
- night I took all my rites of Holy Church, and weened not to have lived
- till day. And after this I languored forth[1] two days and two nights,
- and on the third night I weened oftentimes to have passed;[2] and so
- weened they that were with me.
- And being in youth as yet, I thought it great sorrow to die;--but for
- nothing that was in earth that meliked to live for, nor for no pain
- that I had fear of: for I trusted in God of His mercy. But it was to
- have lived that I might have loved God better, and longer time, that I
- might have the more knowing and loving of God in bliss of Heaven. For
- methought all the time that I had lived here so little and so short in
- regard of that endless bliss,--I thought [it was as] nothing. Wherefore
- I thought: _Good Lord, may my living no longer be to Thy worship!_[3]
- And I understood by my reason and by my feeling of my pains that I
- should die; and I assented fully with all the will of my heart to be at
- God's will.
- Thus I dured till day, and by then my body was dead from the middle
- downwards, as to my feeling. Then was I minded to be set upright,
- backward leaning, with help,--for to have more freedom of my heart to
- be at God's will, and thinking on God while my life would last.
- My Curate was sent for to be at my ending, and by that time when he
- came I had set my eyes, and might[4] not speak. He set the Cross before
- my face and said: _I have brought thee the Image of thy Maker and
- Saviour: look thereupon and comfort thee therewith_.
- Methought I was well [as it was], for my eyes were set uprightward unto
- Heaven, where I trusted to come by the mercy of God; but nevertheless I
- assented to set my eyes on the face of the Crucifix, if I might;[5] and
- so I did. For methought I might longer dure to look even-forth[6] than
- right up.
- After this my sight began to fail, and it was all dark about me in
- the chamber, as if it had been night, save in the Image of the Cross
- whereon I beheld a common light; and I wist not how. All that was
- away from[7] the Cross was of horror to me, as if it had been greatly
- occupied by the fiends.
- After this the upper[8] part of my body began to die, so far forth
- that scarcely I had any feeling;--with shortness of breath. And then I
- weened in sooth to have passed.
- And in this [moment] suddenly all my pain was taken from me, and I was
- as whole (and specially in the upper part of my body) as ever I was
- afore.
- I marvelled at this sudden change; for methought it was a privy working
- of God, and not of nature. And yet by the feeling of this ease I
- trusted never the more to live; nor was the feeling of this ease any
- full ease unto me: for methought I had liefer have been delivered from
- this world.
- Then came suddenly to my mind that I should desire the second wound of
- our Lord's gracious gift: that my body might be fulfilled with mind
- and feeling of His blessed Passion. For I would that His pains were
- my pains, with compassion and afterward longing to God. But in this I
- desired never bodily sight nor shewing of God, but compassion such as a
- kind[9] soul might have with our Lord Jesus, that for love would be a
- mortal man: and therefore I desired to suffer with Him.
- [1] "I langorid forth" = languished on.
- [2] I thought often that I was about to die.
- [3] Or it may be, at in de Cressy's version: _May my living be no
- longer to Thy worship?_
- [4] _i.e._ could.
- [5] _i.e._ could.
- [6] straight forward.
- [7] MS. "beside."
- [8] MS. "over."
- [9] "kinde," true to its nature that was made after the likeness of
- the Creating Son of God, the type and the Head of Mankind,--therefore
- loving, and sympathetic with Him, and compassionate of His earthly
- sufferings: Who, Himself, for Love's sake, suffered as man.
- _THE FIRST REVELATION_
- CHAPTER IV
- "I saw ... as it were in the time of His Passion.... And in the same
- Shewing suddenly the Trinity filled my heart with utmost joy"
- In this [moment] suddenly I saw the red blood trickle down from under
- the Garland hot and freshly and right plenteously, as it were in the
- time of His Passion when the Garland of thorns was pressed on His
- blessed head who was both God and Man, the same that suffered thus for
- me. I conceived truly and mightily that it was Himself shewed it me,
- without any mean.[1]
- And in the same Shewing suddenly the Trinity fulfilled my heart most
- of joy. And so I understood it shall be in heaven without end to all
- that shall come there. For the Trinity is God: God is the Trinity; the
- Trinity is our Maker and Keeper, the Trinity is our everlasting love
- and everlasting joy and bliss, by our Lord Jesus Christ. And this was
- shewed in the First [Shewing] and in all: for where Jesus appeareth,
- the blessed Trinity is understood, as to my sight.
- And I said: _Benedicite Domine!_ This I said for reverence in my
- meaning, with mighty voice; and full greatly was astonied for wonder
- and marvel that I had, that He that is so reverend and dreadful will be
- so homely with a sinful creature living in wretched flesh.
- This [Shewing] I took for the time of my temptation,--for methought by
- the sufferance of God I should be tempted of fiends ere I died. Through
- this sight of the blessed Passion, with the Godhead that I saw in
- mine understanding, I knew well that _It_ was strength enough for me,
- yea, and for all creatures living, against all the fiends of hell and
- ghostly temptation.
- In this [Shewing] He brought our blessed Lady to my understanding. I
- saw her ghostly, in bodily likeness: a simple maid and a meek, young of
- age and little waxen above a child, in the stature that she was when
- she conceived. Also God shewed in part the wisdom and the truth of her
- soul: wherein I understood the reverent beholding in which she beheld
- her God and Maker, marvelling with great reverence that He would be
- born of her that was a simple creature of His making. And this wisdom
- and truth: knowing the greatness of her Maker and the littleness of
- herself that was made,--caused her to say full meekly to Gabriel: _Lo
- me, God's handmaid!_ In this sight[2] I understood soothly that she
- is more than all that God made beneath her in worthiness and grace;
- for above her is nothing that is made but the blessed [Manhood][3] of
- Christ, as to my sight.
- [1] intermediary--thing or person. See vi., xix., xxxv., lv.
- [2] Either: _In this sight_--Shewing--_of her;_ or _In this her
- sight_,--insight--beholding (vii., xliv., lxv.). See Rev. xi. ch. xxv.,
- "For our Lord shewed me nothing in special but our Lady Saint Mary;
- and her He shewed three times." The first shewing is here (a _sight_
- referred to in ch. vii. and elsewhere); the second, in ch. xviii.; the
- third, in ch. xxv.
- [3] This word is in S. de Cressy's edition.
- CHAPTER V
- "God, of Thy Goodness, give me Thyself;--only in Thee I have all"
- In this same time our Lord shewed me a spiritual[1] sight of His homely
- loving.
- I saw that He is to us everything that is good and comfortable for us:
- He is our clothing that for love wrappeth us, claspeth us, and all
- encloseth[2] us for tender love, that He may never leave us; being to
- us all-thing that is good, as to mine understanding.
- Also in this He shewed me a little thing, the quantity of an hazel-nut,
- in the palm of my hand; and it was as round as a ball. I looked
- thereupon with eye of my understanding, and thought: _What may this
- be?_ And it was answered generally thus: _it is all that is made._
- I marvelled how it might last, for methought it might suddenly
- have fallen to naught for little[ness]. And I was answered in my
- understanding: _It lasteth, and ever shall [last] for that God loveth
- it._ And so All-thing hath the Being by the love of God.
- In this Little Thing I saw three properties. The first is that God
- made it, the second is that God loveth it, the third, that God keepeth
- it. But what is to me verily the Maker, the Keeper, and the Lover,--I
- cannot tell; for till I am Substantially oned[3] to Him, I may never
- have full rest nor very bliss: that is to say, till I be so fastened to
- Him, that there is right nought that is made betwixt my God and me.
- It needeth us to have knowing of the littleness of creatures and to
- hold as nought[4] all-thing that is made, for to love and have God that
- is unmade. For this is the cause why we be not all in ease of heart
- and soul: that we seek here rest in those things that are so little,
- wherein is no rest, and know not our God that is All-mighty, All-wise,
- All-good. For He is the Very Rest. God willeth to be known, and it
- pleaseth Him that we rest in Him; for all that is beneath Him sufficeth
- not us. And this is the cause why that no soul is rested till it is
- made nought as to all[5] things that are made. When it is willingly
- made nought, for love, to have Him that is all, then is it able to
- receive spiritual rest.
- Also our Lord God shewed that it is full great pleasance to Him that
- a helpless soul come to Him simply and plainly and homely. For this
- is the natural yearnings of the soul, by the touching of the Holy
- Ghost (as by the understanding that I have in this Shewing): _God, of
- Thy Goodness, give me Thyself: for Thou art enough to me, and I may
- nothing ask that is less that may be full worship to Thee; and if I ask
- anything that is less, ever me wanteth,--but only in Thee I have all._
- And these words are full lovely to the soul, and full near touch they
- the will of God and His Goodness. For His Goodness comprehendeth all
- His creatures and all His blessed works, and overpasseth[6] without
- end. For He is the endlessness, and He hath made us only to Himself,
- and restored us by His blessed Passion, and keepeth us in His blessed
- love; and all this of His Goodness.
- [1] MS. "ghostly," and so, generally, throughout the MS.
- [2] "Becloseth," and so generally.
- [3] _i.e._ in essence united.
- [4] "to nowtyn."
- [5] "nowtid of." de Cressy: "_naughted_ (emptied)."
- [6] surpasseth.
- CHAPTER VI
- "The Goodness of God is the highest prayer, and it cometh down to the
- lowest part of our need"
- This Shewing was made to learn our soul wisely to cleave to the
- Goodness of God.
- And in that time the custom of our praying was brought to mind: how we
- use for lack of understanding and knowing of Love, to take many means
- [whereby to beseech Him].[1]
- Then saw I truly that it is more worship to God, and more very delight,
- that we faithfully[2] pray to Himself of His Goodness and cleave
- thereunto by His Grace, with true understanding, and steadfast by love,
- than if we took all the means that heart can think. For if we took all
- these means, it is too little, and not full worship to God: but in His
- Goodness is all the whole, and _there_ faileth right nought.
- For this, as I shall tell, came to my mind in the same time: We pray
- to God for [the sake of] His holy flesh and His precious blood, His
- holy Passion, His dearworthy death and wounds: and all the blessed
- kindness,[3] the endless life that we have of all this, is His
- Goodness. And we pray Him for [the sake of] His sweet Mother's love
- that Him bare; and all the help we have of her is of His Goodness. And
- we pray by His holy Cross that he died on, and all the virtue and the
- help that we have of the Cross, it is of His Goodness. And on the same
- wise, all the help that we have of special saints and all the blessed
- Company of Heaven, the dearworthy love and endless friendship that
- we have of them, it is of His Goodness. For God of His Goodness hath
- ordained means to help us, full fair and many: of which the chief and
- principal mean is the blessed nature that He took of the Maid, with all
- the means that go afore and come after which belong to our redemption
- and to endless salvation. Wherefore it pleaseth Him that we seek Him
- and worship through means, understanding that He is the Goodness of all.
- For the Goodness of God is the highest prayer, and it cometh down to
- the lowest part of our need. It quickeneth our soul and bringeth it on
- life, and maketh it for to waxen in grace and virtue. It is nearest in
- nature; and readiest in grace: for _it_ is the same grace that the soul
- seeketh, and ever shall seek till we know verily that He hath us all in
- Himself enclosed.
- For He hath no despite of that He hath made, nor hath He any disdain to
- serve us at the simplest office that to our body belongeth in nature,
- for love of the soul that He hath made to His own likeness.
- For as the body is clad in the cloth, and the flesh in the skin, and
- the bones in the flesh, and the heart in the whole,[4] so are we, soul
- and body, clad in the Goodness of God, and enclosed. Yea, and more
- homely: for all these may waste and wear away, but the Goodness of God
- is ever whole; and more near to us, without any likeness; for truly our
- Lover desireth that our soul cleave to Him with all its might, and that
- we be ever-more cleaving to His Goodness. For of all things that heart
- may think, this pleaseth most God, and soonest speedeth [the soul].
- For our soul is so specially loved of Him that is highest, that it
- overpasseth the knowing of all creatures: that is to say, there is no
- creature that is made that may [fully] know[5] how much and how sweetly
- and how tenderly our Maker loveth us. And therefore we may with grace
- and His help stand in spiritual beholding, with everlasting marvel of
- this high, overpassing, inestimable[6] Love that Almighty God hath
- to us of His Goodness. And therefore we may ask of our Lover with
- reverence all that we will.
- For our natural[7] Will is to have God, and the Good Will of God is to
- have us; and we may never cease from willing nor from longing till we
- have Him in fullness of joy: and then may we no more desire.
- For He willeth that we be occupied in knowing and loving till the time
- that we shall be fulfilled in Heaven; and therefore was this lesson of
- Love shewed, with all that followeth, as ye shall see. For the strength
- and the Ground of all was shewed in the First Sight. For of all things
- the beholding and the loving of the Maker maketh the soul to seem less
- in his own sight, and most filleth him with reverent dread and true
- meekness; with plenty of charity to his even-Christians.[8]
- [1] MS. "To make many menys." So in _Letter_ 385 of _The Paston
- Letters_, 1422-1509 A.D.--"Our Soverayn Lord hath wonne the feld, &
- uppon the Munday next after Palmesunday, he was resseved in York with
- gret solempnyte & processyons. And the Mair & Comons of the said cite
- mad ther menys to have grace be [by] Lord Montagu & Lord Barenars,
- which be for the Kyngs coming in to the said cite, which graunted hem
- [them] grace." _Letter_ 472 (from Margaret Paston).--"Your ryth wele
- willers have kounselyd me that I xuld kownsell you to maken other menys
- than ye have made, to other folks, that wold spede your matyrs better
- than they have done thatt ye have spoken to therof" (ed. by James
- Gairdner, vol i.). See ch. iv. p. 8.
- [2] _i.e._ trustingly.
- [3] bond as of relationship.
- [4] "the bouke" = the bulk, the thorax.
- [5] "witten."
- [6] or, as in S. de Cressy, "immeasurable." The word, however, looks
- like "oninestimable" with the "on" blotted or erased.
- [7] "kindly."
- [8] "to his even cristen"--fellow-Christians ("even" = equal).
- _Hamlet_, Act v. Sc. i. "great folk ... more than their even Christian."
- CHAPTER VII
- "The Shewing is not other than of faith, nor less nor more"
- And [it was] to learn us this, as to mine understanding, [that] our
- Lord God shewed our Lady Saint Mary in the same time: that is to say,
- the high Wisdom and Truth _she_ had in beholding of her Maker so great,
- so holy, so mighty, and so good. This greatness and this nobleness of
- the beholding of God fulfilled her with reverent dread, and withal she
- saw herself so little and so low, so simple and so poor, in regard
- of[1] her Lord God, that this reverent dread fulfilled her with
- meekness. And thus, by this ground [of meekness] she was fulfilled with
- grace and with all manner of virtues, and overpasseth all creatures.
- In all the time that He shewed this that I have told now in spiritual
- sight, I saw the bodily sight lasting of the plenteous bleeding of the
- Head. The great drops of blood fell down from under the Garland like
- pellots, seeming as it had come out of the veins; and in the coming
- out they were brown-red, for the blood was full thick; and in the
- spreading-abroad they were bright-red; and when they came to the brows,
- then they vanished; notwithstanding, the bleeding continued till many
- things were seen and understood. The fairness and the lifelikeness
- is like nothing but the same; the plenteousness is like to the drops
- of water that fall off the eaves after a great shower of rain, that
- fall so thick that no man may number them with bodily wit; and for the
- roundness, they were like to the scale of herring, in the spreading on
- the forehead. These three came to my mind in the time: pellots, for
- roundness, in the coming out of the blood; the scale of herring, in the
- spreading in the forehead, for roundness; the drops off eaves, for the
- plenteousness innumerable.
- This Shewing was quick and life-like, and horrifying and dreadful,
- sweet and lovely. And of all the sight it was most comfort to me that
- our God and Lord that is so reverend and dreadful, is so homely and
- courteous: and this most fulfilled me with comfort and assuredness of
- soul.
- And to the understanding of this He shewed this open example:--
- It is the most worship that a solemn King or a great Lord may do a poor
- servant if he will be homely with him, and specially if he sheweth
- it _himself_, of a full true meaning, and with a glad cheer, both
- privately and in company. Then thinketh this poor creature thus: _And
- what might this noble Lord do of more worship and joy to me than to
- shew me that am so simple this marvellous homeliness? Soothly it is
- more joy and pleasance to me than [if] he gave me great gifts and were
- himself strange in manner._
- This bodily example was shewed so highly that man's heart might be
- ravished and almost forgetting itself for joy of the great homeliness.
- Thus it fareth with our Lord Jesus and with us. For verily it is the
- most joy that may be, as to my sight, that He that is highest and
- mightiest, noblest and worthiest, is lowest and meekest, homeliest and
- most courteous: and truly and verily this marvellous joy shall be shewn
- us all when we see Him.
- And this willeth our Lord that we seek for and trust to, joy and
- delight in, comforting us and solacing us, as we may with His grace
- and with His help, unto the time that we see it verily. For the most
- fulness of joy that we shall have, as to my sight, is the marvellous
- courtesy and homeliness of our Father, that is our Maker, in our Lord
- Jesus Christ that is our Brother and our Saviour.
- But this marvellous homeliness may no man fully see in this time of
- life, save he have it of special shewing of our Lord, or of great
- plenty of grace inwardly given of the Holy Ghost. But faith and belief
- with charity deserveth the meed: and so it is had, by grace; for in
- faith, with hope and charity, our life is grounded. The Shewing, made
- to whom that God will, plainly teacheth the same, opened and declared,
- with many privy points belonging to our Faith which be worshipful to
- know. And when the Shewing which is given in a time is passed and hid,
- then the faith keepeth [it] by grace of the Holy Ghost unto our life's
- end. And thus through the Shewing it is not other than of faith, nor
- less nor more; as it may be seen in our Lord's teaching in the same
- matter, by that time that it shall come to the end.
- [1] _i.e._ seen at the same time as, or in comparison with. See the
- note to ch. iv. p. 9.
- CHAPTER VIII
- "In all this I was greatly stirred in charity to my fellow-Christians
- that they might see and know the same that I saw"
- And as long as I saw this sight of the plenteous bleeding of the Head I
- might never cease from these words: _Benedicite Domine!_
- In which Shewing I understood six things:--The first is, the tokens of
- the blessed Passion and the plenteous shedding of His precious blood.
- The second is, the Maiden that is His dearworthy Mother. The third is,
- the blissful Godhead that ever was, is, and ever shall be: Almighty,
- All-Wisdom, All-Love. The fourth is, all-thing that He hath made.--For
- well I wot that heaven and earth and all that is made is great and
- large, fair and good; but the cause why it shewed so little to my sight
- was for that I saw it in the presence of Him that is the Maker of all
- things: for to a soul that seeth the Maker of all, all that is made
- seemeth full little.--The fifth is: He that made all things for love,
- by the same love keepeth them, and shall keep them[1] without end.
- The sixth is, that God is all that is good, as to my sight, and the
- goodness that each thing hath, it is He.[2]
- And all these our Lord shewed me in the first Sight, with time and
- space to behold it. And the bodily sight stinted,[3] but the spiritual
- sight dwelled in mine understanding, and I abode with reverent dread,
- joying in that I saw. And I desired, as I durst, to see more, if it
- were His will, or else [to see for] longer time the same.
- In all this I was greatly stirred in charity to mine even-Christians,
- that they might see and know the same that I saw: for I would it were
- comfort to them. For all this Sight was shewed [with] general [regard].
- Then said I to them that were about me: _It is to-day Doomsday with
- me_. And this I said for that I thought to have died. (For that day
- that a man dieth, he is judged[4] as shall be without end, as to mine
- understanding.) This I said for that I would they might love God the
- better, for to make them to have in mind that this life is short, as
- they might see in example. For in all this time I weened to have died;
- and that was marvel to me, and troublous partly: for methought this
- Vision was shewed for them that should live. And that which I say of
- me, I say in the person of all mine even-Christians: for I am taught in
- the Spiritual Shewing of our Lord God that He meaneth so. And therefore
- I pray you all for God's sake, and counsel you for your own profit,
- that ye leave the beholding of a poor creature[5] that it was shewed
- to, and mightily, wisely, and meekly behold God that of His courteous
- love and endless goodness would shew it generally, in comfort of us
- all. For it is God's will that ye take it with great joy and pleasance,
- as if Jesus had shewed it to you all.
- [1] "it is kept, and shall be."
- [2] "God is althing that is gode, as to my sight, and the godenes that
- al thing hath, it is he."
- [3] _i.e._ ceased.
- [4] "deemed."
- [5] "a wretch."
- CHAPTER IX
- "If I look singularly to myself, I am right nought"
- Because of the Shewing I am not good but if I love God the better: and
- in as much as ye love God the better, it is more to you than to me. I
- say[1] not this to them that be wise, for they wot it well; but I say
- it to you that be simple, for ease and comfort: for we are all one
- in comfort. For truly it was not shewed me that God loved me better
- than the least soul that is in grace; for I am certain that there be
- many that never had Shewing nor sight but of the common teaching of
- Holy Church, that love God better than I. For if I look singularly to
- myself, I am right nought; but in [the] general [Body] I am, I hope, in
- oneness of charity with all mine even-Christians.
- For in this oneness standeth the life of all mankind that shall be
- saved. For God is all that is good, as to my sight, and God hath made
- all that is made, and God loveth all that He hath made: and he that
- loveth generally all his even-Christians for God, he loveth all that
- is. For in mankind that shall be saved is comprehended all: that is to
- say, all that is made and the Maker of all. For in man is God, and God
- is in all. And I hope by the grace of God he that beholdeth it thus
- shall be truly taught and mightily comforted, if he needeth comfort.
- I speak of them that shall be saved, for in this time God shewed me
- none other. But in all things I believe as Holy Church believeth,
- preacheth, and teacheth. For the Faith of Holy Church, the which I
- had aforehand understood and, as I hope, by the grace of God earnestly
- kept in use and custom, stood continually in my sight: [I] willing and
- meaning never to receive anything that might be contrary thereunto. And
- with this intent I beheld the Shewing with all my diligence: for in all
- this blessed Shewing I beheld it as one in God's meaning.[2]
- All this was shewed by three [ways]: that is to say, by bodily sight,
- and by word formed in mine understanding, and by spiritual sight. But
- the spiritual sight I cannot nor may not shew it as openly nor as fully
- as I would. But I trust in our Lord God Almighty that He shall of His
- goodness, and for your love, make you to take it more spiritually and
- more sweetly than I can or may tell it.
- [1] "sey" = _say_ or _tell_.
- [2] _i.e._ The teaching of the Faith and the teaching of the special
- Shewing were both from God and were seen to be at one.
- _THE SECOND REVELATION_
- CHAPTER X
- "God willeth to be seen and to be sought: to be abided and to be
- trusted"
- And after this I saw with bodily sight in the face of the crucifix
- that hung before me, on the which I gazed continually, a part of His
- Passion: despite, spitting and sullying, and buffetting, and many
- languoring pains, more than I can tell, and often changing of colour.
- And one time I saw half the face, beginning at the ear, over-gone with
- dry blood till it covered to the mid-face. And after that the other
- half [was] covered on the same wise, the whiles in this [first] part
- [it vanished] even as it came.
- This saw I bodily, troublously and darkly; and I desired more bodily
- sight, to have seen more clearly. And I was answered in my reason: _If
- God will shew thee more, He shall be thy light: thee needeth none but
- Him._ For I saw Him sought.[1]
- For we are now so blind and unwise that we never seek God till He
- of His goodness shew Himself to us. And when we aught see of Him
- graciously, then are we stirred by the same grace to seek with great
- desire to see Him more blissfully.
- And thus I saw Him, and sought Him; and I had Him, I wanted Him. And
- this is, and should be, our common working in this [life], as to my
- sight.
- One time mine understanding was led down into the sea-ground, and there
- I saw hills and dales green, seeming as it were moss-be-grown, with
- wrack and gravel. Then I understood thus: that if a man or woman were
- under the broad water, if he might have sight of God so as God is with
- a man continually, he should be safe in body and soul, and take no
- harm: and overpassing, he should have more solace and comfort than all
- this world can tell. For He willeth we should believe that we see Him
- continually though that to us it seemeth but little [of sight]; and in
- this belief He maketh us evermore to gain grace. For He will be seen
- and He will be sought: He will be abided and he will be trusted.
- This Second Shewing was so low and so little and so simple, that my
- spirits were in great travail in the beholding,--mourning, full of
- dread, and longing: for I was some time in doubt whether it was a
- Shewing. And then diverse times our good Lord gave me more sight,
- whereby I understood truly that it was a Shewing. It was a figure and
- likeness of our foul deeds' shame that our fair, bright, blessed Lord
- bare for our sins: it made me to think of the Holy Vernacle[2] at
- Rome, which He hath portrayed with His own blessed face when He was in
- His hard Passion, with steadfast will going to His death, and often
- changing of colour. Of the brownness and blackness, the ruefulness
- and wastedness of this Image many marvel how it might be, since that
- He portrayed it with His blessed Face who is the fairness of heaven,
- flower of earth, and the fruit of the Maiden's womb. Then how might
- this Image be so darkening in colour[3] and so far from fair?--I desire
- to tell like as I have understood by the grace of God:--
- We know in our Faith, and believe by the teaching and preaching of Holy
- Church, that the blessed Trinity made Mankind to[4] His image and to
- His likeness. In the same manner-wise we know that when man fell so
- deep and so wretchedly by sin, there was none other help to restore
- man but through Him that made man. And He that made man for love, by
- the same love He would restore man to the same bliss, and overpassing;
- and like as we were like-made to the Trinity in our first making, our
- Maker would that we should be like Jesus Christ, Our Saviour, in heaven
- without end, by the virtue of our again-making.
- Then atwix these two, He would for love and worship of man make
- Himself as like to man in this deadly life, in our foulness and our
- wretchedness, as man might be without guilt. This is that which is
- meant where it is said afore: it was the image and likeness of our foul
- black deeds' shame wherein our fair, bright, blessed Lord God was hid.
- But full certainly I dare say, and we ought to trow it, that so fair a
- man was never none but He, till what time His fair colour was changed
- with travail and sorrow and Passion and dying. Of this it is spoken in
- the Eighth Revelation, where it treateth more of the same likeness. And
- where it speaketh of the Vernacle of Rome, it meaneth by [reason of]
- diverse changing of colour and countenance, sometime more comfortably
- and life-like, sometime more ruefully and death-like, as it may be seen
- in the Eighth Revelation.
- And this [dim] vision was a learning, to mine understanding, that the
- continual seeking of the soul pleaseth God full greatly: for it may
- do no more than seek, suffer and trust. And this is wrought in the
- soul that hath it, by the Holy Ghost; and the clearness of finding,
- _it_ is of His special grace, when it is His will. The seeking, with
- faith, hope, and charity, pleaseth our Lord, and the finding pleaseth
- the soul and fulfilleth it with joy. And thus was I learned, to mine
- understanding, that seeking is as good as beholding, for the time that
- He will suffer the soul to be in travail. It is God's will that _we
- seek Him_, to the beholding of Him, for by _that_[5] He shall shew us
- Himself of His special grace when He will. And how a soul shall have
- Him in its beholding, He shall teach Himself: and that is most worship
- to Him and profit to thyself, and [the soul thus] most receiveth of
- meekness and virtues with the grace and leading of the Holy Ghost. For
- a soul that only fasteneth it[self] on to God with very trust, either
- by seeking or in beholding, it is the most worship that it may do to
- Him, as to my sight.
- These are two workings that may be seen in this Vision: the one is
- seeking, the other is beholding. The seeking is common,--that every
- soul may have with His grace,--and ought to have that discretion and
- teaching of the Holy Church. It is God's will that we have three
- things in our seeking:--The first is that we seek earnestly and
- diligently, without sloth, and, as it may be through His grace, without
- unreasonable[6] heaviness and vain sorrow. The second is, that we abide
- Him steadfastly for His love, without murmuring and striving against
- Him, to our life's end: for it shall last but awhile. The third is that
- we trust in Him mightily of full assured faith. For it is His will that
- we know that He shall appear suddenly and blissfully to all that love
- Him.
- For His working is privy, and He willeth to be perceived; and His
- appearing shall be swiftly sudden; and He willeth to be trusted. For He
- is full gracious[7] and homely: Blessed may He be!
- [1] In de Cressy's version: "I saw Him and sought Him."
- [2] The Handkerchief of S. Veronica.
- [3] "so discolouring."
- [4] _i.e. according to_.
- [5] "for be that" = _for by [means of] that_; or possibly the Old
- English and Scottish 'forbye that' = _besides that_.
- [6] "onskilful" = without discernment or ability; unpractical. S. de
- Cressy, "unreasonable."
- [7] "hend" = at hand; (handy, dexterous;) courteous, gentle, urbane.
- _THE THIRD REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XI
- "All thing that is done, it is well done: for our Lord God doeth all."
- "Sin is no deed"
- And after this I saw God in a Point,[1] that is to say, in mine
- understanding,--by which sight I saw that He is in all things.
- I beheld and considered, seeing and knowing in sight, with a soft
- dread, and thought: _What is sin?_
- For I saw truly that God doeth all-thing, be it never so little. And I
- saw truly that nothing is done by hap nor by adventure, but all things
- by the foreseeing wisdom of God: if it be hap or adventure in the sight
- of man, our blindness and our unforesight is the cause. For the things
- that are in the foreseeing wisdom of God from without beginning, (which
- rightfully and worshipfully and continually He leadeth to the best
- end,) as they come about fall to us suddenly, ourselves unwitting; and
- thus by our blindness and our unforesight we say: these be haps and
- adventures. But to our Lord God they be not so.
- Wherefore me behoveth needs to grant that all-thing that is done, it
- is well-done: for our Lord God doeth all. For in this time the working
- of creatures was not shewed, but [the working] of our Lord God in the
- creature: for He is in the Mid-point of all thing, and all He doeth.
- And I was certain He doeth no sin.
- And here I saw verily that sin is no deed: for in all this was not sin
- shewed. And I would no longer marvel in this, but beheld our Lord, what
- He would shew.
- And thus, as much as it might be for the time, the rightfulness of
- God's working was shewed to the soul.
- Rightfulness hath two fair properties: it is right and it is full.
- And so are all the works of our Lord God: thereto needeth neither the
- working of mercy nor grace: for they be all rightful: wherein faileth
- nought.
- But in another time He gave a Shewing for the beholding of sin nakedly,
- as I shall tell: where He useth working of mercy and grace.
- And this vision was shewed, to mine understanding, for that our
- Lord would have the soul turned truly unto the beholding of Him,
- and generally of all His works. For they are full good; and all His
- doings are easy and sweet, and to great ease bringing the soul that is
- turned from the beholding of the blind Deeming of man unto the fair
- sweet Deeming of our Lord God. For a man beholdeth some deeds well
- done and some deeds evil, but our Lord beholdeth them not so: for as
- all that hath being in nature is of Godly making, so is all that is
- done, in property of God's doing. For it is easy to understand that
- the best deed is well done: and so well as the best deed is done--the
- highest--so well is the least deed done; and all thing in its property
- and in the order that our Lord hath ordained it to from without
- beginning. For there is no doer but He.
- I saw full surely that he changeth never His purpose in no manner of
- thing, nor never shall, without end. For there was no thing unknown to
- Him in His rightful ordinance from without beginning. And therefore
- all-thing was set in order ere anything was made, as it should stand
- without end; and no manner of thing shall fail of that point. For He
- made all things in fulness of goodness, and therefore the blessed
- Trinity is ever full pleased in all His works.[2]
- And all this shewed He full blissfully, signifying thus: _See! I am
- God: see! I am in all thing: see! I do all thing: see! I lift never
- mine hands off my works, nor ever shall, without end: see! I lead all
- thing to the end I ordained it to from without beginning, by the same
- Might, Wisdom and Love whereby I made it. How should any thing be
- amiss?_
- Thus mightily, wisely, and lovingly was the soul examined in this
- Vision. Then saw I soothly that me behoved, of need, to assent, with
- great reverence enjoying in God.
- [1] See below: "He is in the Mid-point," and lxiii. p. 158, "the
- blessed Point from which nature came: that is, God." See also xxi. p.
- 45, "Where is now any point of thy pain?" (least part) and xxi. p.
- 46, "abiding unto the last point"; and lxiv. p. 161, "set the point
- of our thought." These uses of the word may be compared with the
- following:--From the _Banquet of Dante Alighieri_, tr. by K. Hillard
- (Kegan Paul, Trench & Co.), Bk. II. xiv. 12, "_Geometry moves between
- the print and the circle_"; as Euclid says, "the point is the beginning
- of Geometry, and according to him, the circle is the most perfect
- figure, and therefore may be considered its end.... The point by reason
- of its indivisibility is immeasurable, and the circle by reason of
- its arc cannot be exactly squared, and therefore cannot be measured
- with precision." Notes by Miss Hillard: "This is why the Deity is
- represented by a _point. Paradiso_, xxviii. 16: 'A point beheld I,'
- 'Heaven and all nature, hangs upon that point,' etc. Bk. IV. 6, quoting
- Aristotle's _Physics_: '_The circle can be called perfect when it is
- a true circle._ And this is when it contains a point which is equally
- distant from every part of its circumference.' In the _Vita Nuova_ Love
- appearing, says--'I am as the centre of a circle, to which all parts of
- the circumference bear an equal relation' ('_Amor che muove il sole e
- l'altre stelle_')." From _Neoplatonism_, by C. Bigg, D.D. (S.P.C.K.),
- p. 122: "Thus we get a triplet--Soul, Intelligence, and a higher
- Intelligence. The last is spoken of as One, as a point, as neither good
- nor evil because above both."
- [2] On this subject, with the "Two Deemings" and "the Godly Will," see
- xlv., xxxv., xxxvii., lxxxii.
- _THE FOURTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XII
- "The dearworthy blood of our Lord Jesus Christ as verily as it is most
- precious, so verily it it most plenteous"
- And after this I saw, beholding, the body plenteously bleeding in
- seeming of[1] the Scourging, as thus:--The fair skin was broken full
- deep into the tender flesh with sharp smiting all about the sweet body.
- So plenteously the hot blood ran out that there was neither seen skin
- nor wound, but as it were all blood. And when it came where it should
- have fallen down, then it vanished. Notwithstanding, the bleeding
- continued awhile: till it might be seen and considered.[2] And this was
- so plenteous, to my sight, that methought if it had been so in kind[3]
- and in substance at that time, it should have made the bed all one
- blood, and have passed over about.
- And then came to my mind that God hath made waters plenteous in earth
- to our service and to our bodily ease for tender love that He hath to
- us, but yet liketh Him better that we take full homely His blessed
- blood to wash us of sin: for there is no water[4] that is made that
- He liketh so well to give us. For it is most plenteous as it is most
- precious: and that by the virtue of His blessed Godhead; and it is
- [of] our Kind, and all-blissfully belongeth to us by the virtue of His
- precious love.
- The dearworthy blood of our Lord Jesus Christ as verily as it is most
- precious, so verily it is most plenteous. Behold and see! The precious
- plenty of His dearworthy blood descended down into Hell and burst her
- bands and delivered all that were there which belonged to the Court of
- Heaven. The precious plenty of His dearworthy blood overfloweth all
- Earth, and is ready to wash all creatures of sin, which be of goodwill,
- have been, and shall be. The precious plenty of His dearworthy blood
- ascended up into Heaven to the blessed body of our Lord Jesus Christ,
- and there is in Him, bleeding and praying for us to the Father,--and
- is, and shall be as long as it needeth;--and ever shall be as long
- as it needeth. And evermore it floweth in all Heavens enjoying the
- salvation of all mankind, that are there, and shall be--fulfilling the
- number[5] that faileth.
- [1] _i.e._ as it were from.
- [2] "sene with avisement," so, p. 26.--"I beheld with avisement."
- [3] _i.e._ Nature, reality.
- [4] MS. "licor."
- [5] The appointed number of heavenly citizens.
- _THE FIFTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XIII
- "The Enemy is overcome by the blessed Passion and Death of our Lord
- Jesus Christ"
- And after this, ere God shewed any words, He suffered me for a
- convenient time to give heed unto Him and all that I had seen, and all
- intellect[1] that was therein, as the simplicity of the soul might
- take it.[2] Then He, without voice and opening of lips, formed in my
- soul these words: _Herewith is the Fiend overcome_. These words said
- our Lord, meaning His blessed Passion as He shewed it afore.
- On this shewed our Lord that the Passion of Him is the overcoming
- of the Fiend. God shewed that the Fiend hath now the same malice
- that he had afore the Incarnation. And as sore he travaileth, and
- as continually he seeth that all souls of salvation escape him,
- worshipfully, by the virtue of Christ's precious Passion. And that is
- his sorrow, and full evil is he ashamed: for all that God suffereth
- him to do turneth [for] us to joy and [for] him to shame and woe. And
- he hath as much sorrow when God giveth him leave to work, as when he
- worketh not: and that is for that he may never do as ill as he would:
- for his might is all taken[3] into God's hand.
- But in God there may be no wrath, as to my sight: for our good Lord
- endlessly hath regard to His own worship and to the profit of all that
- shall be saved. With might and right He withstandeth the Reproved,
- the which of malice and wickedness busy them to contrive and to do
- against God's will. Also I saw our Lord scorn his malice and set at
- nought his unmight; and He willeth that we do so. For this sight I
- laughed mightily, and that made them to laugh that were about me, and
- their laughing was a pleasure to me. I thought that I would that all
- mine even-Christians had seen as I saw, and then would they all laugh
- with me. But I saw not Christ laugh. For I understood that we may
- laugh in comforting of ourselves and joying in God for that the devil
- is overcome. And when I saw Him scorn his malice, it was by leading
- of mine understanding into our Lord: that is to say, it was an inward
- shewing of verity, without changing of look.[4] For, as to my sight, it
- is a worshipful property of God's that [He] is ever the same.
- And after this I fell into a graveness,[5] and said: _I see three
- things: I see game, scorn, and earnest. I see [a] game, in that the
- Fiend is overcome; I see scorn, in that God scorneth him, and he shall
- be scorned; and I see earnest, in that he is overcome by the blissful
- Passion and Death of our Lord Jesus Christ that was done in full
- earnest and with sober travail._
- When I said, _he is scorned_,--I meant that God scorneth him, that
- is to say, because He seeth him now as he shall do without end. For
- in this [word] God shewed that the Fiend is condemned. And this
- meant I when I said: _he shall be scorned_: [he shall be scorned] at
- Doomsday, generally of all that shall be saved, to whose consolation
- he hath great ill-will.[6] For then he shall see that all the woe and
- tribulation that he hath done to them shall be turned to increase of
- their joy, without end; and all the pain and tribulation that he would
- have brought them to shall endlessly go with him to hell.
- [1] _i.e._ significance, teaching.
- [2] _i.e._ in so far as the simplicity of my soul was able to
- understand it.--See xxiv.
- [3] S. de Cressy has "locked" instead of "taken."
- [4] "chere" = expression of countenance.
- [5] "sadhede."
- [6] "invye."
- _THE SIXTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XIV
- "The age of every man shall be acknowledged before him in Heaven, and
- every man shall be rewarded for his willing service and for his time"
- After this our good Lord said: _I thank thee for thy travail, and
- especially for thy youth._
- And in this [Shewing] mine understanding was lifted up into Heaven
- where I saw our Lord as a lord in his own house, which hath called
- all his dear worthy servants and friends to a stately[1] feast. Then
- I saw the Lord take no place in His own house, but I saw Him royally
- reign in His house, fulfilling it with joy and mirth, Himself endlessly
- to gladden and to solace His dearworthy friends, full homely and
- full courteously, with marvellous melody of endless love, in His own
- fair blessed Countenance. Which glorious Countenance of the Godhead
- fulfilleth the Heavens with joy and bliss.[2]
- God shewed three degrees of bliss that every soul shall have in Heaven
- that willingly hath served God in any degree in earth. The first is
- the worshipful thanks of our Lord God that he shall receive when he is
- delivered of pain. This thanking is so high and so worshipful that the
- soul thinketh it filleth him though there were no more. For methought
- that all the pain and travail that might be suffered by all living
- men might not deserve the worshipful thanks that one man shall have
- that willingly hath served God. The second is that all the blessed
- creatures that are in Heaven shall see that worshipful thanking, and
- He maketh his service known to all that are in Heaven. And here this
- example was shewed:--A king, if he thank his servants, it is a great
- worship to them, and if he maketh it known to all the realm, then
- is the worship greatly increased.--The third is, that as new and as
- gladdening as it is received in that time, right so shall it last
- without end.
- And I saw that homely and sweetly was this shewed, and that the age of
- every man shall be [made] known in Heaven, and [he] shall be rewarded
- for his willing service and for his time. And specially the age of them
- that willingly and freely offer their youth unto God, passingly is
- rewarded and wonderfully is thanked.
- For I saw that whene'er what time a man or woman is truly turned to
- God,--for one day's service and for his endless will he shall have all
- these three decrees of bliss. And the more the loving soul seeth this
- courtesy of God, the liefer he[3] is to serve him all the days of his
- life.
- [1] MS. "solemne"--ceremonial.
- [2] See lxxii. and lxxv.
- [3] Thoughout this MS. _the soul_ is referred to generally with the
- masculine pronoun; the feminine pronoun is never used, in any of its
- cases; the neuter sometimes occurs.
- _THE SEVENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XV
- "It is not God's will that we follow the feeling of pains in sorrow and
- mourning for them"
- And after this He shewed a sovereign ghostly pleasante in my soul. I
- was fulfilled with the everlasting sureness, mightily sustained without
- any painful dread. This feeling was so glad and so ghostly that I was
- in all peace and in rest, that there was nothing in earth that should
- have grieved me.
- This lasted but a while, and I was turned and left to myself in
- heaviness, and weariness of my life, and irksomeness of myself, that
- scarcely I could have patience to live. There was no comfort nor none
- ease to me but faith, hope, and charity; and these I had in truth, but
- little in feeling.
- And anon after this our blessed Lord gave me again the comfort and the
- rest in soul, in satisfying and sureness so blissful and so mighty that
- no dread, no sorrow, no pain bodily that might be suffered should have
- distressed me. And then the pain shewed again to my feeling, and then
- the joy and the pleasing, and now that one, and now that other, divers
- times--I suppose about twenty times. And in the time of joy I might
- have said with Saint Paul: _Nothing shall dispart me from the charity
- of Christ_; and in the pain I might have said with Peter: _Lord, save
- me: I perish!_
- This Vision was shewed me, according to mine understanding, [for]
- that it is speedful to some souls to feel on this wise: sometime to
- be in comfort, and sometime to fail and to be left to themselves. God
- willeth that we know that He keepeth us even alike secure in woe and in
- weal. And for profit of man's soul, a man is sometime left to himself;
- although sin is not always the cause: for in this time I sinned not
- wherefore I should be left to myself--for it was so sudden. Also I
- deserved not to have this blessed feeling. But freely our Lord giveth
- when He will; and suffereth us [to be] in woe sometime. And both is one
- love.
- For it is God's will that we hold us in comfort with all our might: for
- bliss is lasting without end, and pain is passing and shall be brought
- to nought for them that shall be saved. And therefore it is not God's
- will that we follow the feelings of pain in sorrow and mourning for
- them, but that we suddenly pass over, and hold us in endless enjoyment.
- _THE EIGHTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XVI
- "A Part of His Passion"
- After this Christ shewed a part of His Passion near His dying.
- I saw His sweet face as it were dry and bloodless with pale dying. And
- later, more pale, dead, languoring; and then turned more dead unto
- blue; and then more brown-blue, as the flesh turned more deeply dead.
- For His Passion shewed to me most specially in His blessed face (and
- chiefly in His lips): there I saw these four colours, though it were
- afore fresh, ruddy, and pleasing, to my sight. This was a pitiful
- change to see, this deep dying. And also the [inward] moisture clotted
- and dried, to my sight, and the sweet body was brown and black, all
- turned out of fair, life-like colour of itself, unto dry dying.
- For that same time that our Lord and blessed Saviour died upon the
- Rood, it was a dry, hard wind, and wondrous cold, as to my sight, and
- what time [all] the precious blood was bled out of the sweet body that
- might pass therefrom, yet there dwelled a moisture in the sweet flesh
- of Christ, as it was shewed.
- Bloodlessness and pain dried within; and blowing of wind and cold
- coming from without met together in the sweet body of Christ. And these
- four,--twain without, and twain within--dried the flesh of Christ by
- process of time. And though this pain was bitter and sharp, it was full
- long lasting, as to my sight, and painfully dried up all the lively
- spirits of Christ's flesh. Thus I saw the sweet flesh dry in seeming by
- part after part, with marvellous pains. And as long as any spirit had
- life in Christ's flesh, so long suffered He pain.
- This long pining seemed to me as if He had been seven nights dead,
- dying, at the point of outpassing away, suffering the last pain. And
- when I said it seemed to me as if He had been seven night dead, it
- meaneth that the sweet body was so discoloured, so dry, so shrunken,
- so deathly, and so piteous, as if He had been seven night dead,
- continually dying. And methought the drying of Christ's flesh was the
- most pain, and the last, of His Passion.
- CHAPTER XVII
- "How might any pain be more to me than to see Him that is all my life,
- and all my bliss, and all my joy suffer?"
- And in this dying was brought to my mind the words of Christ: _I
- thirst_.
- For I saw in Christ a double thirst: one bodily; another spiritual, the
- which I shall speak of in the Thirty-first Chapter.
- For this word was shewed for the bodily thirst: the which I understood
- was caused by failing of moisture. For the blessed flesh and bones
- was left all alone without blood and moisture. The blessed body dried
- alone long time with wringing of the nails and weight of the body. For
- I understood that for tenderness of the sweet hands and of the sweet
- feet, by the greatness, hardness, and grievousness of the nails the
- wounds waxed wide and the body sagged, for weight by long time hanging.
- And [therewith was] piercing and pressing of the head, and binding
- of the Crown all baked with dry blood, with the sweet hair clinging,
- and the dry flesh, to the thorns, and the thorns to the flesh drying;
- and in the beginning while the flesh was fresh and bleeding, the
- continual sitting of the thorns made the wounds wide. And furthermore
- I saw that the sweet skin and the tender flesh, with the hair and
- the blood, was all raised and loosed about from the bone, with the
- thorns where-through it were rent in many pieces, as a cloth that were
- sagging, as if it would hastily have fallen off, for heaviness and
- looseness, while it had natural moisture. And that was great sorrow and
- dread to me: for methought I would not for my life have seen it fall.
- How it was done I saw not; but understood it was with the sharp thorns
- and the violent and grievous setting on of the Garland of Thorns,
- unsparingly and without pity. This continued awhile, and soon it began
- to change, and I beheld and marvelled how it might be. And then I saw
- it was because it began to dry, and stint a part of the weight, and set
- about the Garland. And thus it encircled all about, as it were garland
- upon garland. The Garland of the Thorns was dyed with the blood, and
- that other garland [of Blood] and the head, all was one colour, as
- clotted blood when it is dry. The skin of the flesh that shewed (of the
- face and of the body), was small-rimpled[1] with a tanned colour, like
- a dry board when it is aged; and the face more brown than the body.
- I saw four manner of dryings: the first was bloodlessness; the second
- was pain following after; the third, hanging up in the air, as men hang
- a cloth to dry; the fourth, that the bodily Kind asked liquid and there
- was no manner of comfort ministered to Him in all His woe and distress.
- Ah! hard and grievous was his pain, but much more hard and grievous it
- was when the moisture failed and began to dry thus, shrivelling.
- These were the pains that shewed in the blessed head: the first wrought
- to the dying, while it had moisture; and that other, slow, with
- shrinking drying, [and] with blowing of the wind from without, that
- dried and pained Him with cold more than mine heart can think.
- And other pains--for which pains I saw that all is too little that I
- can say: for it may not be told.
- The which Shewing of Christ's pains filled me full of pain. For I wist
- well He suffered but once, but [this was as if] He would shew it me
- and fill me with mind as I had afore desired. And in all this time of
- Christ's pains I felt no pain but for Christ's pains. Then thought-me:
- _I knew but little what pain it was that I asked_; and, as a wretch,
- repented me, thinking: _If I had wist what it had been, loth me had
- been to have prayed it_. For methought it passed bodily death, my pains.
- I thought: _Is any pain like this?_ And I was answered in my reason:
- _Hell is another pain: for there is despair. But of all pains that
- lead to salvation this is the most pain, to see thy Love suffer. How
- might any pain be more to me than to see Him that is all my life, all
- my bliss, and all my joy, suffer?_ Here felt I soothfastly[2] that I
- loved Christ so much above myself that there was no pain that might be
- suffered like to that sorrow that I had to [see] Him in pain.
- [1] or _shrivelled_.
- [2] in sure verity.
- CHAPTER XVIII
- "When He was in pain, we were in pain"
- Here I saw a part of the compassion of our Lady, Saint Mary: for
- Christ and she were so oned in love that the greatness of her loving
- was cause of the greatness of her pain. For in this [Shewing] I saw a
- Substance of Nature's[1] Love, continued by Grace, that creatures have
- to Him: which Kind Love was most fully shewed in His sweet Mother, and
- overpassing; for so much as she loved Him more than all other, her
- pains passed all other. For ever the higher, the mightier, the sweeter
- that the love be, the more sorrow it is to the lover to see that body
- in pain that is loved.
- And all His disciples and all His true lovers suffered pains more than
- their own bodily dying. For I am sure by mine own feeling that the
- least of them loved Him so far above himself that it passeth all that I
- can say.
- Here saw I a great oneing betwixt Christ and us, to mine understanding:
- for when He was in pain, we were in pain.
- And all creatures that ought suffer pain, suffered with Him: that is to
- say, all creatures that God hath made to our service. The firmament,
- the earth, failed for sorrow in their Nature in the time of Christ's
- dying. For it belongeth naturally to their property to know Him for
- their God, in whom all their virtue standeth: when He failed, then
- behoved it needs to them, because of kindness [between them], to fail
- with Him, as much as they might, for sorrow of His pains.
- And thus they that were His friends suffered pain for love. And,
- generally, _all_: that is to say, they that knew Him not suffered
- for failing of all manner of comfort save the mighty, privy keeping
- of God. I speak of two manner of folk, as they may be understood by
- two persons: the one was Pilate, the other was Saint Dionyse[2] of
- France, which was [at] that time a Paynim. For when he saw wondrous
- and marvellous sorrows and dreads that befell in that time, he said:
- _Either the world is now at an end, or He that is Maker of Kind
- suffereth._ Wherefore he did write on an altar: THIS IS THE ALTAR
- OF UNKNOWN GOD. God that of His goodness maketh the planets and the
- elements to work of Kind to the blessed man and the cursed, in that
- time made withdrawing[3] of it from both; wherefore it was that they
- that knew Him not were in sorrow that time.
- Thus was our Lord Jesus made-naught for us; and all we stand in this
- manner made-naught with Him, and shall do till we come to His bliss; as
- I shall tell after.
- [1] _i.e._ Natural.
- [2] Dionysius, "the Areopagite," according to the legend of S. Denis.
- [3] MS.--"it was withdrawen from bothe."
- CHAPTER XIX
- "Thus was I learned to choose Jesus for my Heaven, whom I saw only in
- pain at that time"
- In this [time] I would have looked up from the Cross, but I durst not.
- For I wist well that while I beheld in the Cross I was surely-safe;
- therefore I would not assent to put my soul in peril: for away from the
- Cross was no sureness, for frighting of fiends.
- Then had I a proffer in my reason,[1] as if it had been friendly said
- to me: _Look up to Heaven to His Father_. And then saw I well, with
- the faith that I felt, that there was nothing betwixt the Cross and
- Heaven that might have harmed me. Either me behoved to look up or else
- to answer. I answered inwardly with all the might of my soul, and said:
- _Nay; I may not: for Thou art my Heaven._ This I said for that I would
- not. For I would liever have been in that pain till Doomsday than to
- come to Heaven otherwise than by Him. For I wist well that He that
- bound me so sore, He should unbind me when that He would. Thus was I
- learned to choose Jesus to my Heaven, whom I saw only in pain at that
- time: meliked no other Heaven than Jesus, which shall be my bliss when
- I come there.
- And this hath ever been a comfort to me, that I chose Jesus to my
- Heaven, by His grace, in all this time of Passion and sorrow; and that
- hath been a learning to me that I should evermore do so: choose only
- Jesus to my Heaven in weal and woe.
- And though I as a wretched creature had repented me (I said afore if I
- had wist what pain it would be, I had been loth to have prayed), here
- saw I truly that it was reluctance and frailty of the flesh without
- assent of the soul: to which God assigneth no blame. Repenting and
- willing choice be two contraries which I felt both in one at that time.
- And these be [of our] two parts: the one outward, the other inward. The
- outward part is our deadly flesh-hood, which is now in pain and woe,
- and shall be, in this life: whereof I felt much in this time; and that
- part it was that repented. The inward part is an high, blissful life,
- which is all in peace and in love: and this was more inwardly felt; and
- this part is [that] in which mightily, wisely and with steadfast will I
- chose Jesus to my Heaven.
- And in this I saw verily that the inward part is master and sovereign
- to the outward, and doth not charge itself with, nor take heed to, the
- will of that: but all the intent and will is set to be oned unto our
- Lord Jesus. That the outward part should draw the inward to assent
- was not shewed to me; but that the inward draweth the outward by
- grace, and both shall be oned in bliss without end, by the virtue of
- Christ,--_this_ was shewed.
- [1] see xxxv. and lv.
- CHAPTER XX
- "For every man's sin that shall be saved He suffered, and every man's
- sorrow and desolation He saw, and sorrowed for Kinship and Love"
- And thus I saw our Lord Jesus languoring long time. For the oneing with
- the Godhead gave strength to the manhood for love to suffer more than
- all men might suffer: I mean not only more pain than all men might
- suffer, but also that He suffered more pain than all men of salvation
- that ever were from the first beginning unto the last day might tell or
- fully think, having regard to the worthiness of the highest worshipful
- King and the shameful, despised, painful death. For He that is highest
- and worthiest was most fully made-nought and most utterly despised.
- For the highest point that may be seen in the Passion is to think and
- know what He is that suffered. And in this [Shewing] He brought in part
- to mind the height and nobleness of the glorious Godhead, and therewith
- the preciousness and the tenderness of the blessed Body, which be
- together united; and also the lothness that is in our Kind to suffer
- pain. For as much as He was most tender and pure, right so He was most
- strong and mighty to suffer.
- And for every man's sin that shall be saved He suffered: and every
- man's sorrow and desolation He saw, and sorrowed for Blindness and
- love. (For in as much as our Lady sorrowed for His pains, in so much He
- suffered sorrow for her sorrow;--and more, in as greatly as the sweet
- manhood of Him was worthier in Kind.) For as long as He was passible
- He suffered for us and sorrowed _for_ us; and now He is uprisen and no
- more passible, yet He suffereth _with_ us.
- And I, beholding all this by His grace, saw that the Love of Him was so
- strong which He hath to our soul that willingly He chose it with great
- desire, and mildly He suffered it with well-pleasing.
- For the soul that beholdeth it thus, when it is touched by grace, it
- shall verily see that the pains of Christ's Passion pass all pains:
- [all pains] that is to say, which shall be turned into everlasting,
- o'erpassing joys by the virtue of Christ's Passion.
- CHAPTER XXI
- "We be now with Him in His Pains and His Passion, dying. We shall be
- with Him in Heaven. Through learning in this little pain that we suffer
- here, we shall have an high endless knowledge of God which we could
- never have without that"
- It is God's will, as to mine understanding, that we have Three[1]
- Manners of Beholding His blessed Passion. The First is: _the hard Pain
- that He suffered_,--[beholding it] with contrition and compassion. And
- that shewed our Lord in this time, and gave me strength and grace to
- see it.
- And I looked for the departing with all my might, and thought to have
- seen the body all dead; but I saw Him not so. And right in the same
- time that methought, by the seeming, the life might no longer last and
- the Shewing of the end behoved needs to be,--suddenly (I beholding in
- the same Cross), He changed [the look of] His blessed Countenance.[2]
- The changing of His blessed Countenance changed mine, and I was as glad
- and merry as it was possible. Then brought our Lord merrily to my mind:
- _Where is now any point of the pain, or of thy grief?_ And I was full
- merry.
- I understood that we be now, in our Lord's meaning, in His Cross with
- Him in His pains and His Passion, dying; and we, willingly abiding
- in the same Cross with His help and His grace unto the last point,
- suddenly He shall change His Cheer to us, and we shall be with Him in
- Heaven. Betwixt that one and that other shall be no time, and then
- shall all be brought to joy. And thus said He in this Shewing: _Where
- is now any point of thy pain, or thy grief?_ And we shall be full
- blessed.
- And here saw I verily that if He shewed now [to] us His _Blissful_
- Cheer, there is no pain in earth or in other place that should aggrieve
- us; but all things should be to us joy and bliss. But because He
- sheweth to us time of His Passion, as He bare it in _this_ life, and
- His Cross, therefore we are in distress and travail, with Him, as our
- frailty asketh. And the cause why He suffereth [it to be so,] is for
- [that] He will of His goodness make us the higher with Him in His
- bliss; and for this little pain that we suffer here, we shall have an
- high endless knowing in God which we could[3] never have without that.
- And the harder our pains have been with Him in His Cross, the more
- shall our worship[4] be with Him in His Kingdom.
- [1] xxii. and xxiii.
- [2] His "blisful chere," or blessed Cheer; lxxii. and Note.
- [3] "might."
- [4] _i.e._ glory.
- _THE NINTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XXII
- "The Love that made Him to suffer passeth so far all His Pains as
- Heaven is above Earth"
- Then said our good Lord Jesus Christ: _Art thou well pleased that I
- suffered for thee?_ I said: _Yea, good Lord, I thank Thee; Yea, good
- Lord, blessed mayst Thou be._ Then said Jesus, our kind Lord: _If thou
- art pleased, I am pleased: it is a joy, a bliss, an endless satisfying
- to me that ever suffered I Passion for thee; and if I might suffer
- more, I would suffer more._
- In this feeling my understanding was lifted up into Heaven, and there I
- saw three heavens: of which sight I marvelled greatly. And though I see
- three heavens--and all in the blessed manhood of Christ--none is more,
- none is less, none is higher, none is lower, but [they are] even-like
- in bliss.
- For the First Heaven, Christ shewed me His Father; in no bodily
- likeness, but in His property and in His working. That is to say, I saw
- in Christ that the Father is. The working of the Father is this, that
- He giveth meed to His Son Jesus Christ. This gift and this meed is so
- blissful to Jesus that His Father might have given Him no meed that
- might have pleased Him better. The first heaven, that is the pleasing
- of the Father, shewed to me as one heaven; and it was full blissful:
- for He is full pleased with all the deeds that Jesus hath done about
- our salvation. Wherefore we be not only His by His buying, but also by
- the courteous gift of His Father we be His bliss, we be His meed, we
- be His worship, we be His crown. (And this was a singular marvel and a
- full delectable beholding, that we be His crown!) This that I say is so
- great bliss to Jesus that He setteth at nought all His travail, and His
- hard Passion, and His cruel and shameful death.
- And in these words: _If that I might suffer more, I would suffer
- more_,--I saw in truth that as often as He _might_ die, so often He
- _would_, and love should never let Him have rest till He had done it.
- And I beheld with great diligence for to learn how often He would die
- if He might. And verily the number passed mine understanding and my
- wits so far that my reason might not, nor could, comprehend it. And
- when He had thus oft died, or should, yet He would set it at nought,
- for love: for all seemeth[1] Him but little in regard of His love.
- For though the sweet manhood of Christ might suffer but once, the
- goodness in Him may never cease of proffer: every day He is ready to
- the same, if it might be. For if He said He would for my love make new
- Heavens and new Earth, it were but little in comparison;[2] for this
- might be done every day if He would, without any travail. But to die
- for my love so often that the number passeth creature's reason, it is
- the highest proffer that our Lord God might make to man's soul, as to
- my sight. Then meaneth He thus: _How should it not be that I should not
- do for thy love all that I might of deeds which grieve me not, sith
- I would, for thy love, die so often, having no regard[3] to my hard
- pains?_
- And here saw I, for the Second[4] Beholding in this blessed Passion
- _the love that made Him to suffer passeth as far all His pains as
- Heaven is above Earth._ For the pains was a noble, worshipful deed done
- in a time by the working of love: but[5] Love was without beginning,
- is, and shall be without ending. For which love He said full sweetly
- these words: _If I might suffer more, I would suffer more._ He said
- not, _If it were needful to suffer more:_ for though it were not
- needful, if He _might_ suffer more, He would.
- This deed, and this work about our salvation, was ordained as well as
- God might ordain it. And here I saw a Full Bliss in Christ: for His
- bliss should not have been full, if it might any better have been done.
- [1] "ffor al thynketh him but litil in reward of His love" [in
- comparison with].
- [2] MS. "Reward."
- [3] MS. "Reward."
- [4] See xxi., xxiii.
- [5] MS. "and," probably here, at in other places, with something of the
- force of "but."
- CHAPTER XXIII
- "The Glad Giver" "All the Trinity wrought in the Passion of Jesus
- Christ"
- And in these three words: _It is a joy, a bliss, an endless satisfying
- to me_, were shewed three heavens, as thus: For the joy, I understood
- the pleasure of the Father; and for the bliss, the worship of the
- Son; and for the endless satisfying,[1] the Holy Ghost. The Father is
- pleased, the Son is worshipped, the Holy Ghost is satisfied.[2]
- And here saw I, for the Third Beholding in His blissful Passion: that
- is to say, _the Joy and the Bliss that make Him to be well-satisfied
- in it._ For our Courteous Lord shewed His Passion to me in five
- manners: of which the first is the bleeding of the head; the second
- is, discolouring of His face; the third is, the plenteous bleeding of
- the body, in seeming [as] from the scourging; the fourth is, the deep
- dying:--these four are aforetold for the pains of the Passion. And
- the fifth is [this] that was shewed for the joy and the bliss of the
- Passion.
- For it is God's will that we have true enjoying with Him in our
- salvation, and therein He willeth [that] we be mightily comforted and
- strengthened; and thus willeth He that merrily with His grace our soul
- be occupied. For we are His bliss: for in us He enjoyeth without end;
- and so shall we in Him, with His grace.
- And all that He hath done for us, and doeth, and ever shall, was never
- cost nor charge to Him, nor might be, but only that [which] He did in
- our manhood, beginning at the sweet Incarnation and lasting to the
- Blessed Uprise on Easter-morrow:[3] so long dured the cost and the
- charge about our redemption in _deed_: of [the] which deed He enjoyeth
- endlessly, as it is aforesaid.
- Jesus willeth that we take heed to the bliss that is in the blessed
- Trinity [because] of our salvation and that _we_ desire to have as much
- spiritual enjoying, with His grace, (as it is aforesaid): that is to
- say, that the enjoying of our salvation be [as] like to the joy that
- Christ hath of our salvation as it may be while we are here.
- All the Trinity wrought in the Passion of Christ, ministering abundance
- of virtues and plenty of grace to us by Him: but only the Maiden's Son
- suffered: whereof all the blessed Trinity endlessly enjoyeth. All this
- was shewed in these words: _Art thou well pleased?_--and by that other
- word that Christ said: _If thou art pleased, then am I pleased;_--as if
- He said: _It is joy and satisfying enough to me, and I ask nought else
- of thee for my travail but that I might well please thee_.
- And in this He brought to mind the property of a glad giver. A glad
- giver taketh but little heed of the thing that he giveth, but all his
- desire and all his intent is to please him and solace him to whom he
- giveth it. And if the receiver take the gift highly and thankfully,
- then the courteous giver setteth at nought all his cost and all his
- travail, for joy and delight that he hath pleased and solaced him that
- he loveth. Plenteously and fully was this shewed.
- Think also wisely of the greatness of this word "_ever_." For in it
- was shewed an high knowing of love[4] that _He_ hath in our salvation,
- with manifold joys that follow of the Passion of Christ. One is that He
- rejoiceth that He hath done it in deed, and He shall no more suffer;
- another, that He bought us from endless pains of hell.
- [1] "lykyng."
- [2] "lykith."
- [3] "Esterne morrow" = Easter morning.
- [4] Experience of loving (?).
- _THE TENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XXIV
- "Our Lord looked unto His [wounded] Side, and beheld, rejoicing....
- _Lo! how I loved thee_"
- Then with a glad cheer our Lord looked unto His Side and beheld,
- rejoicing. With His sweet looking He led forth the understanding of His
- creature by the same wound into His Side within. And then he shewed a
- fair, delectable place, and large enough for all mankind that shall be
- saved to rest in peace and in love.[1] And therewith He brought to mind
- His dearworthy blood and precious water which he let pour all out for
- love. And with the sweet beholding He shewed His blessed heart even
- cloven in two.
- And with this sweet enjoying, He shewed unto mine understanding,
- in part, _the blessed Godhead_, stirring then the poor soul[2] to
- understand, as it may be said, that is, to think on,[3] the _endless_
- Love that was without beginning, and is, and shall be ever. And with
- this our good Lord said full blissfully: _Lo, how that I loved thee,_
- as if He had said: _My darling, behold and see thy Lord, thy God that
- is thy Maker and thine endless joy, see what satisfying and bliss I
- have in thy salvation; and for my love rejoice [thou] with me._
- And also, for more understanding, this blessed word was said: _Lo,
- how I loved thee! Behold and see that I loved thee so much ere I died
- for thee that I would die for thee; and now I have died for thee and
- suffered willingly that which I may. And now is all my bitter pain and
- all my hard travail turned to endless joy and bliss to me and to thee.
- How should it now be that thou shouldst anything pray that pleaseth me
- but that I should full gladly grant it thee? For my pleasing is thy
- holiness and thine endless joy and bliss with me._
- This is the understanding, simply as I can say it, of this blessed
- word: _Lo, how I loved thee._ This shewed our good Lord for to make us
- glad and merry.
- [1] See note on the passage in li., "long and broad, all full of
- endless heavens"; "He hath, beclosed in Him, all heavens and all joy
- and bliss."
- [2] See xiii., "the simplicity of the soul."
- [3] MS. "that is to mene the endles love."
- _THE ELEVENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XXV
- "I wot well that thou wouldst see my blessed Mother...." "Wilt thou see
- in her how thou art loved?"
- And with this same cheer of mirth and joy our good Lord looked down
- on the right side and brought to my mind where our Lady stood in the
- time of His Passion; and said: _Wilt thou see her?_ And in this sweet
- word [it was] as if He had said: _I wot well that thou wouldst see
- my blessed Mother: for, after myself, she is the highest joy that I
- might shew thee, and most pleasance and worship to me; and most she
- is desired to be seen of my blessed creatures._ And for the high,
- marvellous, singular love that He hath to this sweet Maiden, His
- blessed Mother, our Lady Saint Mary, He shewed her highly rejoicing, as
- by the meaning of these sweet words; as if He said: _Wilt thou see how
- I love her, that thou mightest joy with me in the love that I have in
- her and she in me?_
- And also (unto more understanding this sweet word) our Lord speaketh to
- all mankind that shall be saved, as it were all to one person, as if He
- said: _Wilt thou see in her how thou art loved? For thy love I made her
- so high, so noble and so worthy; and this pleaseth me, and so will I
- that it doeth thee._
- For after Himself she is the most blissful sight.
- But hereof am I not learned to long to see her bodily presence while I
- am here, but the virtues of her blessed soul: her truth, her wisdom,
- her charity; whereby I may learn to know myself and reverently dread my
- God. And when our good Lord had shewed this and said this word: _Wilt
- thou see her?_ I answered and said: _Yea, good Lord, I thank Thee; yea,
- good Lord, if it be Thy will._ Oftentimes I prayed this, and I weened
- to have seen her in bodily presence, but I saw her not so. And Jesus in
- that word shewed me ghostly sight of her: right as I had seen her afore
- little and simple, so He shewed her then high and noble and glorious,
- and pleasing to Him above all creatures.
- And He willeth that it be known; that [so] all those that please them
- in Him should please them in her, and in the pleasance that He hath
- in her and she in Him.[1] And, to more understanding, He shewed this
- example: _As if a man love a creature singularly, above all creatures,_
- he willeth to make all creatures to love and to have pleasance in that
- creature that he loveth so greatly. And in this word that Jesus said:
- _Wilt thou see her?_ methought it was the most pleasing word that He
- might have given me of her, with that ghostly Shewing that He gave me
- of her. For our Lord shewed me nothing in special but our Lady Saint
- Mary; and her He shewed three times.[2] The first was as she was with
- Child; the second was as she was in her sorrows under the Cross; the
- third is as she is now in pleasing, worship, and joy.
- [1] "And he wil that it be knowen that al those that lyke in him should
- lyken in hir and in the lykyng that he hath in hir and she in him."
- [2] See (1) iv. (referred to in vii.); (2) xviii.
- _THE TWELFTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XXVI
- "It is I, it is I"
- And after this our Lord shewed Himself more glorified, as to my sight,
- than I saw Him before [in the Shewing] wherein I was learned that our
- soul shall never have rest till it cometh to Him, knowing that He is
- fulness of joy, homely and courteous, blissful and very life.
- Our Lord Jesus oftentimes said: _I it am, I it am: I it am that is
- highest, I it am that thou lovest, I it am that thou enjoyest, I it
- am that thou servest, I it am that thou longest for, I it am that thou
- desirest, I it am that thou meanest, I it am that is all. I it am that
- Holy Church preacheth and teacheth thee, I it am that shewed me here to
- thee._ The number of the words passeth my wit and all my understanding
- and all my powers. And they are the highest, as to my sight: for
- therein is comprehended--I cannot tell,--but the joy that I saw in
- the Shewing of them passeth all that heart may wish for and soul may
- desire. Therefore the words be not declared here; but every man after
- the grace that God giveth him in understanding and loving, receive them
- in our Lord's meaning.
- _THE THIRTEENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER XXVII
- "Often I wondered why by the great foreseeing wisdom of God the
- beginning of sin was not hindered: for then, methought, all should have
- been well." "Sin is behovable--[playeth a needful part]--; but all
- shall be well"
- After this the Lord brought to my mind the longing that I had to Him
- afore. And I saw that nothing letted me but sin. And so I looked,
- generally, upon us all, and methought: _If sin had not been, we should
- all have been clean and like to our Lord, as He made us._
- And thus, in my folly, afore this time often I wondered why by the
- great foreseeing wisdom of God the beginning of sin was not letted: for
- then, methought, all should have been well. This stirring [of mind]
- was much to be forsaken, but nevertheless mourning and sorrow I made
- therefor, without reason and discretion.
- But Jesus, who in this Vision informed me of all that is needful to
- me, answered by this word and said: _It behoved that there should be
- sin;[1] but all shall be well, and all shall be well, and all manner of
- thing shall be well._
- In this naked word _sin_, our Lord brought to my mind, generally, _all
- that is not good_, and the shameful despite and the utter noughting[2]
- that He bare for us in this life, and His dying; and all the pains
- and passions of all His creatures, ghostly and bodily; (for we be all
- partly noughted, and we shall be noughted following our Master, Jesus,
- till we be full purged, that is to say, till we be fully noughted of
- our deadly flesh and of all our inward affections which are not very
- good;) and the beholding of this, with all pains that ever were or ever
- shall be,--and with all these I understand the Passion of Christ for
- most pain, and overpassing. All this was shewed in a touch and quickly
- passed over into comfort: for our good Lord would not that the soul
- were affeared of this terrible sight.
- But I saw not _sin_: for I believe it hath no manner of substance nor
- no part of being, nor could it be known but by the pain it is cause of.
- And thus[3] pain, _it_ is something, as to my sight, for a time; for
- it purgeth, and maketh us to know ourselves and to ask mercy. For the
- Passion of our Lord is comfort to us against all this, and so is His
- blessed will. And for the tender love that our good Lord hath to all
- that shall be saved, He comforteth readily and sweetly, signifying
- thus: _It is sooth[4] that sin is cause of all this pain; but all shall
- be well, and all shall be well, and all manner [of] thing shall be
- well._
- These words were said full tenderly, showing no manner of blame to me
- nor to any that shall be saved. Then were it a great unkindness[5] to
- blame or wonder on God for my sin, since He blameth not me for sin.
- And in these words I saw a marvellous high mystery hid in God, which
- mystery He shall openly make known to us in Heaven: in which knowing we
- shall verily see the cause why He suffered sin to come. In which sight
- we shall endlessly joy in our Lord God.[6]
- [1] "Synne is behovabil, but al shal be wel & al shal be wel & al
- manner of thyng shal be wele."
- [2] Being made as nothing, set at nought.
- [3] S. de Cressy has "this" instead of _thus_.
- [4] _i.e._ truth, an actual reality. See lxxxii.
- [5] As it were, an unreasonable contravention of natural, filial trust.
- [6] See also chap. lxi. From the _Enchiridion_ of Saint
- Augustine:--"All things that exist, therefore, seeing that the Creator
- of them all is supremely good, are themselves good. But because they
- are not like their Creator, supremely and unchangeably good, their good
- may be diminished and increased. But for good to be diminished is an
- evil, although, however much it may be diminished, it is necessary, if
- the being is to continue, that some good should remain to constitute
- the being. For however small or of whatever kind the being may be, the
- good which makes it a being cannot be destroyed without destroying the
- being itself.... So long as a being is in process of corruption, there
- is in it some good of which it is being deprived; and if a part of the
- being should remain which cannot be corrupted, this will certainly
- be an incorruptible being, and accordingly the process of corruption
- will result in the manifestation of this great good. But if it do
- not cease to be corrupted, neither can it cease to possess good of
- which corruption may deprive it. But if it should be thoroughly and
- completely consumed by corruption, there will then be no good left,
- because there will be no being. Wherefore corruption can consume the
- good only by consuming the being. Every being, therefore, is a good; a
- great good, if it cannot be corrupted; a little good, if it can: but in
- any case, only the foolish or ignorant will deny that it is a good. And
- if it be wholly consumed by corruption, then the corruption itself must
- cease to exist, as there is no being left in which it can dwell."
- Chap. x. "By the Trinity, thus supremely and equally and unchangeably
- good, all things were created; and these are not supremely and equally
- and unchangeably good, but yet they are good, even taken separately.
- Taken as a whole, however, they are very good, because their _ensemble_
- constitutes the universe in all its wonderful order and beauty."--_The
- Works of Aurelius Augustine, Bishop of Hippo_, (Edited by the Rev.
- Marcus Dods, D.D.), vol. ix.
- CHAPTER XXVIII
- "Each brotherly compassion that man hath on his fellow Christians, with
- charity, it is Christ in him"
- Thus I saw how Christ hath compassion on us for the cause of sin.
- And right as I was afore in the [Shewing of the] Passion of Christ
- fulfilled with pain and compassion, like so in this [sight] I was
- fulfilled, in part, with compassion of all mine even-Christians--for
- that well, well beloved people that shall be saved. For God's servants,
- Holy Church, shall be shaken in sorrow and anguish, tribulation in this
- world, as men shake a cloth in the wind.
- And as to this our Lord answered in this manner: _A great thing shall I
- make hereof in Heaven of endless worship and everlasting joys._
- Yea, so far forth I saw, that our Lord joyeth of the tribulations of
- His servants, with ruth and compassion. On each person that He loveth,
- to His bliss for to bring [them], He layeth something that is no blame
- in His sight, whereby they are blamed and despised in this world,
- scorned, mocked,[1] and outcasted. And this He doeth for to hinder the
- harm that they should take from the pomp and the vain-glory of this
- wretched life, and make their way ready to come to Heaven, and up-raise
- them in His bliss everlasting. For He saith: _I shall wholly break you
- of your vain affections and your vicious pride; and after that I shall
- together gather you, and make you mild and meek, clean and holy, by
- oneing to me._
- And then I saw that each kind compassion that man hath on his
- even-Christians with charity, it is Christ in him.
- That same noughting that was shewed in His Passion, it was shewed again
- here in this Compassion. Wherein were two manner of understandings
- in our Lord's meaning. The one was the bliss that we are brought to,
- wherein He willeth that we rejoice. The other is for comfort in our
- pain: for He willeth that we perceive that it shall all be turned to
- worship and profit by virtue of His passion, that we perceive that
- we suffer not alone but with Him, and see Him to be our Ground, and
- that we see His pains and His noughting passeth so far all that we may
- suffer, that it may not be fully thought.
- The beholding of this will save us from murmuring[2] and despair in the
- feeling of our pains. And if we see soothly that our sin deserveth it,
- yet His love excuseth us, and of His great courtesy He doeth away all
- our blame, and beholdeth us with ruth and pity as children innocent and
- unloathful.
- [1] "Something that is no lak in his syte, whereby thei are lakid
- & dispisyd in thys world, scornyd" (a word like "rapyd"--probably
- "mokyd," as in S. de Cressy) "& outcasten."
- [2] "gruching."
- CHAPTER XXIX
- "How could all be well, for the great harm that is come by sin to the
- creature?"
- But in this I stood beholding things general, troublously and mourning,
- saying thus to our Lord in my meaning, with full great dread: _Ah! good
- Lord, how might all be well, for the great hurt that is come, by sin,
- to the creature?_ And here I desired, as far as I durst, to have some
- more open declaring wherewith I might be eased in this matter.
- And to this our blessed Lord answered full meekly and with full lovely
- cheer, and shewed that Adam's sin was the most harm that ever was
- done, or ever shall be, to the world's end; and also He shewed that
- this [sin] is openly known in all Holy Church on earth. Furthermore
- He taught that I should behold the glorious Satisfaction[1]: for this
- Amends-making[2] is more pleasing to God and more worshipful, without
- comparison, than ever was the sin of Adam harmful. Then signifieth our
- blessed Lord thus in this teaching, that we should take heed to this:
- _For since I have made well the most harm, then it is my will that thou
- know thereby that I shall make well all that is less._
- [1] "asyeth" = _asseth_, Satisfying, Fulfilment. See p. 2.
- [2] "asyeth making". See preceding note.
- CHAPTER XXX
- "Two parts of Truth: the part that is open: our Saviour and our
- salvation;--and the part that is hid and shut up from us: all beside
- our salvation"
- He gave me understanding of two parts [of truth]. The one part is our
- Saviour and our salvation. This blessed part is open and clear and fair
- and light, and plenteous,--for all mankind that is of good will, and
- shall be, is comprehended in this part. Hereto are we bounden of God,
- and drawn and counselled and taught inwardly by the Holy Ghost and
- outwardly by Holy Church in the same grace. In this willeth our Lord
- that we be occupied, joying in Him; for He enjoyeth in us. The more
- plenteously that we take of this, with reverence and meekness, the more
- thanks we earn of Him and the more speed[1] to ourselves, thus--may we
- say--enjoying _our_ part of our Lord. The other [part] is hid and shut
- up from us: that is to say, all that is beside our salvation. For it is
- our Lord's privy counsel, and it belongeth to the royal lordship of God
- to have His privy counsel in peace, and it belongeth to His servant,
- for obedience and reverence, not to learn[2] wholly His counsel. Our
- Lord hath pity and compassion on us for that some creatures make
- themselves so busy therein; and I am sure if we knew how much we should
- please Him and ease ourselves by leaving it, we would. The saints that
- be in Heaven, they will to know nothing but that which our Lord willeth
- to shew them: and also their charity and their desire is ruled after
- the will of our Lord: and thus ought we to will, like to them. Then
- shall we nothing will nor desire but the will of our Lord, as they do:
- for we are all one in God's seeing.
- And here was I learned that we shall trust and rejoice only in our
- Saviour, blessed Jesus, for all thing.
- [1] _i.e._ profit.
- [2] "It longyth to the ryal Lordship of God to have his privy councell
- in pece, and it longyth to his servant for obedience and reverens not
- to wel wetyn his counselye."
- CHAPTER XXXI
- "The Spiritual Thirst (which was in Him from without beginning) is
- desire in Him as long as we be in need, drawing us up to His Bliss"
- And thus our good Lord answered to all the questions and doubts that I
- might make, saying full comfortably: _I may make all thing well, I can
- make all thing well, I will make all thing well, and I shall make all
- thing well; and thou shalt see thyself that all manner of thing shall
- be well._
- In that He saith, _I may_, I understand [it] for the Father; and in
- that He saith, _I can_, I understand [it] for the Son; and where He
- saith, _I will_, I understand [it] for the Holy Ghost; and where He
- saith, _I shall_, I understand [it] for the unity of the blessed
- Trinity: three Persons and one Truth; and where He saith, _Thou shalt
- see thyself_, I understand the oneing of all mankind that shall be
- saved unto the blessed Trinity. And in these five words God willeth we
- be enclosed in rest and in peace.
- Thus shall the Spiritual Thirst of Christ have an end. For this is the
- Spiritual Thirst of Christ: the love-longing that lasteth, and ever
- shall, till we see that sight on Doomsday. For we that shall be saved
- and shall be Christ's joy and His bliss, some be yet here and some be
- to come, and so shall some be, unto that day. Therefore this is His
- thirst and love-longing, to have us altogether whole in Him, to His
- bliss,--as to my sight. For we be not now as fully whole in Him as we
- shall be then.
- For we know in our Faith, and also it was shewed in all [the
- Revelations] that Christ Jesus is both God and man. And anent the
- Godhead, He is Himself highest bliss, and was, from without beginning,
- and shall be, without end: which endless bliss may never be heightened
- nor lowered in itself. For this was plenteously seen in every Shewing,
- and specially in the Twelfth, where He saith: _I am that [which] is
- highest_. And anent Christ's Manhood, it is known in our Faith, and
- also [it was] shewed, that He, with the virtue of Godhead, for love, to
- bring us to His bliss suffered pains and passions, and died. And these
- be the works of Christ's Manhood wherein He rejoiceth; and that shewed
- He in the Ninth Revelation, where He saith: _It is a joy and bliss and
- endless pleasing to me that ever I suffered Passion for thee._ And
- this is the bliss of Christ's _works_, and thus he signifieth where He
- saith in that same Shewing: we be His bliss, we be His meed, we be His
- worship, we be His crown.
- For anent that Christ is our Head, He is glorified and impassible; and
- anent His Body in which all His members are knit, He is not yet fully
- glorified nor all impassible. Therefore the same desire and thirst
- that He had upon the Cross (which desire, longing, and thirst, as to
- my sight, was in Him from without beginning) the same hath He yet, and
- shall [have] unto the time that the last soul that shall be saved is
- come up to His bliss.
- For as verily as there is a property in God of ruth and pity, so verily
- there is a property in God of thirst and longing. (And of the virtue of
- this longing in Christ, _we_ have to long again to Him: without which
- no soul cometh to Heaven.) And this property of longing and thirst
- cometh of the endless Goodness of God, even as the property of pity
- cometh of His endless Goodness. And though longing and pity are two
- sundry properties, as to my sight, in this standeth the point of the
- Spiritual Thirst: which is _desire in Him as long as we be in need_,
- drawing us up to His bliss. And all this was seen in the Shewing of
- Compassion: for that shall cease on Doomsday.
- Thus He hath ruth and compassion on us, and He hath longing to have us;
- but His wisdom and His love suffereth not the end to come till the best
- time.
- CHAPTER XXXII
- "There be deeds evil done in our sight, and so great harms taken, that
- it seemeth to us that it were impossible that ever it should come to
- good end." "That Great Deed ordained ... by which our Lord God shall
- make all things well"
- One time our good Lord said: _All thing shall be well_; and another
- time he said: _Thou shalt see thyself that all_ MANNER _[of] thing
- shall be well_; and in these two [sayings] the soul took sundry
- understandings.
- One was that He willeth we know that not only He taketh heed to noble
- things and to great, but also to little and to small, to low and to
- simple, to one and to other. And so meaneth He in that He saith: ALL
- MANNER OF THINGS _shall be well_. For He willeth we know that the least
- thing shall not be forgotten.
- Another understanding is this, that there be deeds evil done in our
- sight, and so great harms taken, that it seemeth to us that it were
- impossible that ever it should come to good end. And upon this we look,
- sorrowing and mourning therefor, so that we cannot resign us unto the
- blissful beholding of God as we should do. And the cause of this is
- that the use of our reason is now so blind, so low, and so simple, that
- we cannot know that high marvellous Wisdom, the Might and the Goodness
- of the blissful Trinity. And thus signifieth He when He saith: THOU
- SHALT SEE THYSELF _if[1] all manner of things shall be well_. As if He
- said: _Take now heed faithfully and trustingly, and at the last end
- thou shalt verily see it in fulness of joy_.
- And thus in these same five words aforesaid: _I may make all things
- well_, etc., I understand a mighty comfort of all the works of our Lord
- God that are yet to come. There is a Deed the which the blessed Trinity
- shall do in the last Day, as to my sight, and when the Deed shall be,
- and how it shall be done, is unknown of all creatures that are beneath
- Christ, and shall be till when it is done.
- ["The Goodness and the Love of our Lord God will that we wit [know]
- that it shall be; And the Might and the Wisdom of him by the same Love
- will hill [conceal] it, and hide it from us what it shall be, and how
- it shall be done."][2]
- And the cause why He willeth that we know [this Deed shall be], is for
- that He would have us the more eased in our soul and [the more] set at
- peace in love[3]--leaving the beholding of all troublous things that
- might keep us back from true enjoying of Him. This is that Great Deed
- ordained of our Lord God from without beginning, treasured and hid in
- His blessed breast, only known to Himself: by which He shall make all
- things well.
- For like as the blissful Trinity made all things of nought, right so
- the same blessed Trinity shall make well all that is not well.
- And in this sight I marvelled greatly and beheld our Faith, marvelling
- thus: Our Faith is grounded in God's word, and it belongeth to our
- Faith that we believe that God's word shall be saved in all things;
- and one point of our Faith is that many creatures shall be condemned:
- as angels that fell out of Heaven for pride, which be now fiends; and
- man[4] in earth that dieth out of the Faith of Holy Church: that is
- to say, they that be heathen men; and also man[5] that hath received
- Christendom and liveth unchristian life and so dieth out of charity:
- all these shall be condemned to hell without end, as Holy Church
- teacheth me to believe. And all this [so] standing,[6] methought it was
- impossible that all manner of things should be well, as our Lord shewed
- in the same time.
- And as to this I had no other answer in Shewing of our Lord God but
- this: _That which is impossible to thee is not impossible to me: I
- shall save my word in all things and I shall make all things well._
- Thus I was taught, by the grace of God, that I should steadfastly hold
- me in the Faith as I had aforehand understood, [and] therewith that I
- should firmly believe that all things shall be well, as our Lord shewed
- in the same time.
- For this is the Great Deed that our Lord shall do, in which Deed He
- shall save His word and He shall make all well that is not well. How it
- shall be done there is no creature beneath Christ that knoweth it, nor
- shall know it till it is done; according to the understanding that I
- took of our Lord's meaning in this time.
- [1] "if" = "that." (Acts xxvi. 8.)
- [2] Inserted from Serenus de Cressy's version.
- [3] "pecid in love--levyng the beholdyng of al tempests that might
- letten us of trew enjoyeng in hym." S. de Cressy: "let us of true
- enjoying in him."
- [4] S. de Cressy, "many."
- [5] S. de Cressy, "many."
- [6] "stondyng al this."
- CHAPTER XXXIII
- "It is God's will that we have great regard to all His deeds that He
- hath done, but evermore it needeth us to leave the beholding what the
- Deed shall be"
- And yet in this I desired, as [far] as I durst, that I might have full
- sight of Hell and Purgatory. But it was not my meaning to make proof of
- anything that belongeth to the Faith: for I believed soothfastly that
- Hell and Purgatory is for the same end that Holy Church teacheth, but
- my meaning was that I might have seen, for learning in all things that
- belong to my Faith: whereby I might live the more to God's worship and
- to my profit.
- But for [all] my desire, I could[1] [see] of this right nought, save
- as it is aforesaid in the First Shewing, where I saw that the devil is
- reproved of God and endlessly condemned. In which sight I understood
- as to all creatures that are of the devil's condition in this life,
- and therein end, that there is no more mention made of them afore God
- and all His Holy than of the devil,--notwithstanding that they be of
- mankind--whether they be christened or not.
- For though the Revelation was made of goodness in which was made
- little mention of evil, yet I was not drawn thereby from any point
- of the Faith that Holy Church teacheth me to believe. For I had
- sight of the Passion of Christ in diverse Shewings,--the First, the
- Second, the Fifth, and the Eighth,--wherein I had in part a feeling
- of the sorrow of our Lady, and of His true friends that saw Him in
- pain; but I saw not so properly specified the Jews that did Him to
- death. Notwithstanding I knew in my Faith that they were accursed and
- condemned without end, saving those that converted, by grace. And I
- was strengthened and taught generally to keep me in the Faith in every
- point, and in all as I had before understood: hoping that I was therein
- with the mercy and the grace of God; desiring and praying in my purpose
- that I might continue therein unto my life's end.
- And it is God's will that we have great regard to all His deeds that
- He hath done, but evermore it needeth us to leave the beholding what
- the Deed shall be. And let us desire to be like our brethren which
- be saints in Heaven, that will right nought but God's will and are
- well pleased both with hiding and with shewing. For I saw soothly in
- our Lord's teaching, the more we busy us to know His secret counsels
- in this or any other thing, the farther shall we be from the knowing
- thereof.
- [1] "I coude of this right nowte."
- CHAPTER XXXIV
- "All that is speedful for us to learn and to know, full courteously
- will our Lord shew us"
- Our Lord God shewed two manner of secret things. One is this great
- Secret [Counsel] with all the privy points that belong thereto: and
- these secret things He willeth we should know [as _being_, but as]
- _hid_ until the time that He will clearly shew them to us. The other
- are the secret things that He willeth to make open and known to us; for
- He would have us understand that it is His will that we should know
- them. They are secrets to us not only for that He willeth that they
- be secrets to us, but they are secrets to us for our blindness and
- our ignorance; and thereof He hath great ruth, and therefore He will
- Himself make them more open to us, whereby we may know Him and love
- Him and cleave to Him. For all that is speedful for us to learn and to
- know, full courteously will our Lord shew us: and [of] that is this
- [Shewing], with all the preaching and teaching of Holy Church.
- God shewed full great pleasance that He hath in all men and women that
- mightily and meekly and with all their will take the preaching and
- teaching of Holy Church. For it is His Holy Church: He is the Ground,
- He is the Substance, He is the Teaching, He is the Teacher, He is the
- End, He is the Meed for which every kind soul travaileth.
- And _this_ [of the Shewing] is [made] known, and shall be known to
- every soul to which the Holy Ghost declareth it. And I hope truly that
- all those that seek this, He shall speed: for they seek God.
- All this that I have now told, and more that I shall tell after, is
- comforting against sin. For in the Third Shewing when I saw that God
- doeth all that is done, I saw no sin: and then I saw that all _is_
- well. But when God shewed me for sin, then said He: _All_ SHALL _be
- well_.
- CHAPTER XXXV
- "I desired to learn assuredly as to a certain creature that I loved....
- It is more worship to God to behold Him in _all_ than in any special
- thing"
- And when God Almighty had shewed so plenteously and joyfully of His
- Goodness, I desired to learn assuredly as to a certain creature that
- I loved, if it should continue in good living, which I hoped by the
- grace of God was begun. And in this desire for a _singular_ Shewing,
- it seemed that I hindered myself: for I was not taught in this time.
- And then was I answered in my reason, as it were by a friendly
- intervenor[1]: _Take it_ GENERALLY, _and behold the graciousness of the
- Lord God as He sheweth to thee: for it is more worship to God to behold
- Him in all than in any special thing_. And therewith I learned that
- it is more worship to God to know all-thing in general, than to take
- pleasure in any special thing. And if I should do wisely according to
- this teaching, I should not only be glad for nothing in special, but
- I should not be greatly distressed for no manner of thing[2]: for ALL
- _shall be well_. For the fulness of joy is to behold God in _all_: for
- by the same blessed Might, Wisdom, and Love, that He made all-thing, to
- the same end our good Lord leadeth it continually, and thereto Himself
- shall bring it; and when it is time we shall see it. And the ground
- of this was shewed in the First [Revelation], and more openly in the
- Third, where it saith: _I saw God in a point_.
- All that our Lord doeth is rightful, and that which He suffereth[3] is
- worshipful: and in these two is comprehended good and ill: for all that
- is good our Lord doeth, and that which is evil our Lord suffereth. I
- say not that any evil is worshipful, but I say the sufferance of our
- Lord God is worshipful: whereby His Goodness shall be known, without
- end, in His marvellous meekness and mildness, by the working of mercy
- and grace.
- _Rightfulness_ is that thing that is so good that [it] may not be
- better than it is. For God Himself is very Rightfulness, and all His
- works are done rightfully as they are ordained from without beginning
- by His high Might, His high Wisdom, His high Goodness. And right as He
- ordained unto the best, right so He worketh continually, and leadeth
- it to the same end; and He is ever full-pleased with Himself and with
- all His works. And the beholding of this blissful accord is full
- sweet to the soul that seeth by grace. All the souls that shall be
- saved in Heaven without end be made rightful in the sight of God, and
- by His own goodness: in which rightfulness we are endlessly kept, and
- marvellously, above all creatures.
- And _Mercy_ is a working that cometh of the goodness of God, and it
- shall last in working all along, as sin is suffered to pursue rightful
- souls. And when sin hath no longer leave to pursue, then shall the
- working of mercy cease, and then shall all be brought to rightfulness
- and therein stand without end.
- And by His sufferance we fall; and in His blissful Love with His Might
- and His Wisdom we are kept; and by mercy and grace we are raised to
- manifold more joys.
- Thus in Rightfulness and Mercy He willeth to be known and loved, now
- and without end. And the soul that wisely beholdeth it in grace, it is
- well pleased with both, and endlessly enjoyeth.
- [1] "A friendful mene" = intermediary (person or thing), medium:
- compare chaps. xix., lv.
- [2] See xxxvi. 74.
- [3] _i.e._ alloweth.
- CHAPTER XXXVI
- "My sin shall not hinder His Goodness working.... A deed shall be
- done--as we come to Heaven--and it may be known here in part;--though
- it be truly taken for the general Man, yet it excludeth not the
- special. For what our good Lord will do by His poor creatures, it is
- now unknown to me"
- Our Lord God shewed that a deed shall be done, and Himself shall do
- it, and I shall do nothing but sin, and my sin shall not hinder[1] His
- Goodness working. And I saw that the beholding of this is a heavenly
- joy in a fearing soul which evermore kindly by grace desireth God's
- will. This deed shall be begun here, and it shall be worshipful to God
- and plenteously profitable to His lovers in earth; and ever as we come
- to Heaven we shall see it in marvellous joy, and it shall last thus in
- working unto the last Day; and the worship and the bliss of it shall
- last in Heaven afore God and all His Holy [ones] for ever.
- Thus was this deed seen and understood in our Lord's signifying: and
- the cause why He shewed it is to make us rejoice in Him and in all
- His works. When I saw His Shewing continued, I understood that it
- was shewed for a great thing that was for to come, which thing God
- shewed that He Himself should do it: which deed hath these properties
- aforesaid. And this shewed He well blissfully, signifying that I should
- take it myself faithfully and trustingly.
- But what this deed should be was kept secret from me.
- And in this I saw that He willeth not that we dread to know the things
- that He sheweth: He sheweth them because He would have us know them; by
- which knowing He would have us love Him and have pleasure and endlessly
- enjoy in Him. For the great love that He hath to us He sheweth us all
- that is worshipful and profitable for the time. And the things that He
- will now have privy, yet of His great goodness He sheweth them _close_:
- in which shewing He willeth that we believe and understand that we
- shall see the same verily in His endless bliss. Then ought we to
- rejoice in Him for all that He sheweth and all that He hideth; and if
- we steadily[2] and meekly do thus, we shall find therein great ease;
- and endless thanks we shall have of Him therefor.
- And this is the understanding of this word:--That it shall be done for
- me, meaneth that it shall be done for the general Man: that is to say,
- all that shall be saved. It shall be worshipful and marvellous and
- plenteous, and God Himself shall do it; and this shall be the highest
- joy that may be, to behold the deed that God Himself shall do, and man
- shall do right nought but sin. Then signifieth our Lord God thus, as
- if He said: _Behold and see! Here hast thou matter of meekness, here
- hast thou matter of love, here hast thou matter to make nought of[3]
- thyself, here hast thou matter to enjoy in me;--and, for my love, enjoy
- [thou] in me: for of all things, therewith mightest thou please me
- most_.
- And as long as we are in this life, what time that we by our folly turn
- us to the beholding of the reproved, tenderly our Lord God toucheth us
- and blissfully calleth us, saying in our soul: _Let be all thy love, my
- dearworthy child: turn thee to me--I am enough to thee--and enjoy in
- thy Saviour and in thy salvation_. And that this is our Lord's working
- in us, I am sure the soul that hath understanding[4] therein by grace
- shall see it and feel it.
- And though it be so that this deed be truly taken for the general Man,
- yet it excludeth not the special. For what our good Lord will do by His
- poor creatures, it is now unknown to me.
- But this deed and that other aforesaid, they are not both one but two
- sundry. This deed shall be done sooner (and that [time] shall be as we
- come to Heaven), and to whom our Lord giveth it, it may be known here
- in part. But that Great Deed aforesaid shall neither be known in Heaven
- nor earth till it is done.
- And moreover He gave special understanding and teaching of working of
- miracles, as thus:--_It is known that I have done miracles here afore,
- many and diverse, high and marvellous, worshipful and great. And so as
- I have done, I do now continually, and shall do in coming of time_.
- It is known that afore miracles come sorrow and anguish and
- tribulation[5]; and that is for that we should know our own feebleness
- and our mischiefs that we are fallen in by sin, to meeken us and make
- us to dread God and cry for help and grace. Miracles come after that,
- and they come of the high Might, Wisdom, and Goodness of God, shewing
- His virtue and the joys of Heaven so far at it may be in this passing
- life: and that to strengthen our faith and to increase our hope, in
- charity. Wherefore it pleaseth Him to be known and worshipped in
- miracles. Then signifieth He thus: He willeth that we be not borne over
- low for sorrow and tempests that fall to us: for it hath ever so been
- afore miracle-coming.
- [1] "lettyn his goodnes werkyng."
- [2] "wilfully."
- [3] "to nowten."
- [4] "is a perceyvid" (S. de Cressy, "pearced"; Collins, "pierced";) =
- has perception.
- [5] See v., xlviii., lix., lxi.
- CHAPTER XXXVII
- "In every soul that shall be saved is a Godly Will that never assented
- to sin, nor ever shall."--"For failing of Love on our part, therefore
- is all our travail"
- God brought to my mind that I should sin. And for pleasance that I had
- in beholding of Him, I attended not readily to that shewing; and our
- Lord full mercifully abode, and gave me grace to attend. And this
- shewing I took singularly to myself; but by all the gracious comfort
- that followeth, as ye shall see, I was learned to take it for all mine
- even-Christians: _all in general and nothing in special_: though our
- Lord shewed me that I should sin, by me alone is understood all.
- And therein I conceived a soft dread. And to this our Lord answered:
- _I keep thee full surely_. This word was said with more love and
- secureness and spiritual keeping than I can or may tell. For as it
- was shewed that [I][1] should sin, right so was the comfort shewed:
- secureness and keeping for all mine even-Christians.
- What may make me more to love mine even-Christians than to see in God
- that He loveth all that shall be saved as it were all one soul?
- For in every soul that shall be saved is a Godly Will that never
- assented to sin, nor ever shall. Right as there is a beastly will in
- the lower part that may will no good, right so there is a Godly Will in
- the higher part, which will is so good that it may never will evil, but
- ever good. And therefore we are that which He loveth and endlessly we
- do that which Him pleaseth.
- This shewed our Lord in [shewing] the wholeness of love that we stand
- in, in His sight: yea, that He loveth us now as well while we are here,
- as He shall do while we are there afore His blessed face. But for
- failing of love on our part, therefore is all our travail.
- [1] Perhaps the omitted word is "_all_"; but de Cressy has "I" as
- above: "that I should sin."
- CHAPTER XXXVIII
- In Heaven "the token of sin is turned to worship."--_Examples thereof_
- Also God shewed that sin shall be no shame to man, but worship. For
- right as to every sin is answering a pain by truth, right so for every
- sin, to the same soul is given a bliss by love: right as diverse sins
- are punished with diverse pains according as they be grievous, right so
- shall they be rewarded with diverse joys in Heaven according as they
- have been painful and sorrowful to the soul in earth. For the soul that
- shall come to Heaven is precious to God, and the place so worshipful
- that the goodness of God suffereth never that soul to sin that shall
- come there without that the which sin shall be rewarded; and it is made
- known without end, and blissfully restored by overpassing worship.
- For in this Sight mine understanding was lifted up into Heaven, and
- then God brought merrily to my mind David, and others in the Old Law
- without number; and in the New Law He brought to my mind first Mary
- Magdalene, Peter and Paul, and those of Inde;[1] and Saint John of
- Beverley[2]; and others also without number: how they are known in the
- Church in earth with their sins, and it is to them no shame, but all is
- turned for them to worship. And therefore our courteous Lord sheweth
- [it thus] for them here in part like as it is there in fulness: for
- there the token of sin is turned to worship.
- And Saint John of Beverley, our Lord shewed him full highly, in
- comfort to us for homeliness; and brought to my mind how he is a dear
- neighbour,[3] and of our knowing. And God called him _Saint John of
- Beverley_ plainly as we do, and that with a most glad sweet cheer,
- shewing that he is a full high saint in Heaven in His sight, and a
- blissful. And with this he made mention that in his youth and in his
- tender age he was a dearworthy servant to God, greatly God loving and
- dreading, and yet God suffered him to fall, mercifully keeping him that
- he perished not, nor lost no time. And afterward God raised him to
- manifold more grace, and by the contrition and meekness that he had in
- his living, God hath given him in Heaven manifold joys, overpassing
- that [which] he should have had if he had not fallen. And that this is
- sooth, God sheweth in earth with plenteous miracles doing about his
- body continually.
- And all this was to make us glad and merry in love.
- [1] S. Thomas and S. Jude. According to tradition the Gospel was
- carried to India by these Apostles.
- [2] S. John of Beverley was consecrated Bishop of Hexham in 687,
- and was afterwards Archbishop of York. "He founded the monastery of
- Beverley in the midst of the wood called Deira, among the ruins of the
- deserted Roman settlement of Pentuaria. This monastery, like so many
- others of the Anglo-Saxons, was a double community of monks and nuns.
- In 718 John retired for the remaining years of his life to Beverley,
- where he died in 721 on the 7th of May.... He was canonised in 1037.
- Henschenius the Bollandist, in the second tome of May, has published
- books of the miracles wrought at the relicks of St John of Beverley
- written by eye-witnesses. His sacred bones were honourably translated
- into the church of Alfric, Archbishop of York, in 1037. A feast in
- honour of his translation was kept on the 25th of October."--Alban
- Butler's _Lives of the Saints_, etc.
- Perhaps the fact that the Saint's original Feast Day of the 7th of
- May occurred on the second day of Julian's illness, had something to
- do with his being brought to her mind a few days after with so much
- vividness.
- [3] "and browte to mynd how he is an hende neybor and of our
- knowyng"--_i.e._ he was a countryman of our own. "hende" = near,
- urbane, gentle.
- CHAPTER XXXIX
- "Sin is the sharpest scourge.... By contrition we are made clean, by
- compassion we are made ready, and by true longing towards God we are
- made worthy"
- Sin is the sharpest scourge that any chosen soul may be smitten with:
- which scourge thoroughly beateth[1] man and woman, and maketh him
- hateful in his own sight, so far forth that afterwhile[2] he thinketh
- himself he is not worthy but as to sink in hell,--till [that time] when
- contrition taketh him by touching of the Holy Ghost, and turneth the
- bitterness into hopes of God's mercy. And then He beginneth his wounds
- to heal, and the soul to quicken [as it is] turned unto the life of
- Holy Church. The Holy Ghost leadeth him to confession, with all his
- will to shew his sins nakedly and truly, with great sorrow and great
- shame that he hath defouled the fair image of God. Then receiveth he
- penance for every sin [as] enjoined by his doomsman[3] that is grounded
- in Holy Church by the teaching of the Holy Ghost. And this is one
- meekness that greatly pleaseth God; and also bodily sickness of God's
- sending, and also sorrow and shame from without, and reproof, and
- despite of this world, with all manner of grievance and temptations
- that we be cast in,[4] bodily and ghostly.
- Full preciously our Lord keepeth us when it seemeth to us that we are
- near forsaken and cast away for our sin and because we have deserved
- it. And because of meekness that we get hereby, we are raised well-high
- in God's sight by His grace, with so great contrition, and also
- compassion, and true longing to God. Then they be suddenly delivered
- from sin and from pain, and taken up to bliss, and made even high
- saints.
- By contrition we are made clean, by compassion we are made ready, and
- by true longing toward God we are made worthy. These are three means,
- as I understand, whereby that all souls come to heaven: that is to say,
- that have been sinners in earth and shall be saved: for by these three
- medicines it behoveth that every soul be healed. Though the soul be
- healed, his wounds are seen afore God,--not as wounds but as worships.
- And so on the contrary-wise, as we be punished here with sorrow and
- penance, we shall be rewarded in heaven by the courteous love of our
- Lord God Almighty, who willeth that none that come there lose his
- travail in any degree. For He [be]holdeth sin as sorrow and pain to
- His lovers, to whom He assigneth no blame, for love. The meed that we
- shall receive shall not be little, but it shall be high, glorious, and
- worshipful. And so shall shame be turned to worship and more joy.
- But our courteous Lord willeth not that His servants despair, for often
- nor for grievous falling: for our falling hindereth[5] not Him to love
- us. Peace and love are ever in us, being and working; but we be not
- alway in peace and in love. But He willeth that we take heed thus that
- He is Ground of all our whole life in love; and furthermore that He is
- our everlasting Keeper and mightily defendeth us against our enemies,
- that be full fell and fierce upon us;--and so much our need is the more
- for [that] we give them occasion by our falling.[6]
- [1] "al forbetyth." S. de Cressy: "all to beateth," Judges ix. 53.
- [2] "otherwhile."
- [3] S. de Cressy: "Dome's-man, _i.e._ Confessarius."
- [4] MS. "will be cast in."
- [5] letteth not Him to love us.
- [6] See chap. lxviii. Inx both passages the Brit. Mus. MS. seems to
- have "him," not "hem" = them. The reading here might be: "For we give
- _Him_ occasion by our failing"--occasion to keep and defend us: and so
- in lxxviii.: "He keepeth us mightily and mercifully in the time that
- we are in our sin and among all our enemies that are full fell upon
- us;--and so much we are in the more peril. For we give Him occasion
- thereto and know not our own need." Or possibly the sense is (1): He
- defendeth us "so much [as] our need is the more" [so much more as]; and
- (2) "so much [more as] we are in the more peril." But S. de Cressy's
- version has in both passages "them," and this reading agrees with chap.
- lxxvi.: "We have this [fear] by the stirring of our enemy and by our
- own folly and blindness"--we who "fall often into sin."
- CHAPTER XL
- "True love teacheth us that we should hate sin only for love." "To me
- was shewed no harder hell than sin." "God willeth that we endlessly
- hate the sin and endlessly love the soul, as God loveth it"
- This is a sovereign friendship of our courteous Lord that He keepeth
- us so tenderly while we be in sin; and furthermore He toucheth us
- full privily and sheweth us our sin by the sweet light of mercy and
- grace. But when we see our self so foul, then ween we that God were
- wroth with us for our sin, and then are we stirred of the Holy Ghost
- by contrition unto prayer and desire for the amending of our life with
- all our mights, to slacken the wrath of God, unto the time we find a
- rest in soul and a softness in conscience. Then hope we that God hath
- forgiven us our sins: and it is truth. And then sheweth our courteous
- Lord Himself to the soul--well-merrily and with glad cheer--with
- friendly welcoming as if it[1] had been in pain and in prison, saying
- sweetly thus: _My darling I am glad thou art come to me: in all thy
- wo I have ever been with thee; and now seest thou my loving and we be
- oned in bliss_. Thus are sins forgiven by mercy and grace, and our soul
- is worshipfully received in joy like as it shall be when it cometh to
- Heaven, as oftentimes as it cometh by the gracious working of the Holy
- Ghost and the virtue of Christ's Passion.
- Here understand I in truth that all manner of things are made ready
- for us by the great goodness of God, so far forth that what time we be
- ourselves in peace and charity, we be verily saved. But because we may
- not have this in fulness while we are here, therefore it falleth to
- us evermore to live in sweet prayer and lovely longing with our Lord
- Jesus. For He longeth ever to bring us to the fulness of joy; as it is
- aforesaid, where He sheweth the Spiritual Thirst.
- But now if any man or woman because of all this spiritual comfort that
- is aforesaid, be stirred by folly to say or to think: _If this be true,
- then were it good to sin [so as] to have the more meed_,--or else to
- charge the less [guilt] to sin,--beware of this stirring: for verily
- if it come it is untrue, and of the enemy of the same true love that
- teacheth us that we should hate sin only for love. I am sure by mine
- own feeling, the more that any kind[2] soul seeth this in the courteous
- love of our Lord God, the lother he is to sin and the more he is
- ashamed. For if afore us were laid [together] all the pains in Hell and
- in Purgatory and in Earth--death and other--, and [by itself] sin, we
- should rather choose all that pain than sin. For sin is so vile and so
- greatly to be hated that it may be likened to no pain which is not sin.
- And to me was shewed no harder hell than sin. For a kind[3] soul hath
- no hell but sin.
- And [when] we give our intent to love and meekness, by the working of
- mercy and grace we are made all fair and clean. As mighty and as wise
- as God is to save men, so willing He is. For Christ Himself is [the]
- ground of all the laws of Christian men, and He taught us to do good
- against ill: here may we see that He is Himself this charity, and doeth
- to us as He teacheth us to do. For He willeth that we be like Him in
- wholeness of endless love to ourself and to our even-Christians: no
- more than His love is broken to us for our sin, no more willeth He that
- our love be broken to ourself and to our even-Christians: but [that we]
- endlessly hate the sin and endlessly love the soul, as God loveth it.
- Then shall we hate sin like as God hateth it, and love the soul as God
- loveth it. And this word that He said is an endless comfort: _I keep
- thee securely_.
- [1] "he," that is, the soul.
- [2] A naturally-loving, filial human soul.
- [3] A naturally-loving, filial human soul.
- _THE FOURTEENTH REVELATION._
- CHAPTER XLI
- "_I am the Ground of thy beseeching._" "Also to prayer belongeth
- thanking"
- After this our Lord shewed concerning Prayer. In which Shewing I see
- two conditions in our Lord's signifying: one is rightfulness, another
- is sure trust.
- But yet oftentimes our trust is not full: for we are not sure that God
- heareth us, as we think because of our unworthiness, and because we
- feel right nought, (for we are as barren and dry oftentimes after our
- prayers as we were afore); and this, in our feeling our folly, is cause
- of our weakness.[1] For thus have I felt in myself.
- And all this brought our Lord suddenly to my mind, and shewed these
- words, and said: _I am Ground of thy beseeching: first it is my will
- that thou have it; and after, I make thee to will it; and after, I make
- thee to beseech it and thou beseechest it. How should it then be that
- thou shouldst not have thy beseeching?_
- And thus in the first reason, with the three that follow, our good Lord
- sheweth a mighty comfort, as it may be seen in the same words. And in
- the first reason,--where He saith: _And thou beseechest it_, there He
- sheweth [His] full great pleasance, and endless meed that He will give
- us for our beseeching. And in the second reason, where He saith: _How
- should it then be?_ etc., this was said for an impossible [thing].
- For it is most impossible that we should beseech mercy and grace, and
- not have it. For everything that our good Lord maketh us to beseech,
- Himself hath ordained it to us from without beginning. Here may we see
- that our beseeching is not cause of God's goodness; and that shewed
- He soothfastly in all these sweet words when He saith: _I am [the]
- Ground_.--And our good Lord willeth that this be known of His lovers in
- earth; and the more that we know [it] the more should we beseech, if it
- be wisely taken; and so is our Lord's meaning.
- Beseeching is a true, gracious, lasting will of the soul, oned and
- fastened into the will of our Lord by the sweet inward work of the
- Holy Ghost. Our Lord Himself, He is the first receiver of our prayer,
- as to my sight, and taketh it full thankfully and highly enjoying; and
- He sendeth it up above and setteth it in the Treasure, where it shall
- never perish. It is there afore God with all His Holy continually
- received, ever speeding [the help of] our needs; and when we shall
- receive our bliss it shall be given us for a degree of joy, with
- endless worshipful thanking from[2] Him.
- Full glad and merry is our Lord of our prayer; and He looketh
- thereafter and He willeth to have it because with His grace He maketh
- us like to Himself in condition as we are in kind: and so is His
- blissful will. Therefore He saith thus: _Pray inwardly,[3] though thee
- thinketh it savour thee not: for it is profitable, though thou feel
- not, though thou see nought; yea, though thou think thou canst not.
- For in dryness and in barrenness, in sickness and in feebleness, then
- is thy prayer well-pleasant to me, though thee thinketh it savour thee
- nought but little. And so is all thy believing prayer in my sight._ For
- the meed and the endless thanks that He will give us, _therefor_ He is
- covetous to have us pray continually in His sight. God accepteth the
- goodwill and the travail of His servant, howsoever we feel: wherefore
- it pleaseth Him that we work both in our prayers and in good living,
- by His help and His grace, reasonably with discretion keeping our
- powers[4] [turned] to Him, till when that we have Him that we seek, in
- fulness of joy: that is, Jesus. And that shewed He in the Fifteenth
- [Revelation], farther on, in this word: _Thou shalt have me to thy
- meed_.
- And also to prayer belongeth thanking. Thanking is a true inward
- knowing, with great reverence and lovely dread turning ourselves
- with all our mights unto the working that our good Lord stirreth us
- to, enjoying and thanking inwardly. And sometimes, for plenteousness
- it breaketh out with voice, and saith: _Good Lord, I thank Thee![5]
- Blessed mayst Thou be!_ And sometime when the heart is dry and feeleth
- not, or else by temptation of our enemy,--then it is driven by reason
- and by grace to cry upon our Lord with voice, rehearing His blessed
- Passion and His great Goodness; and the virtue of our Lord's word
- turneth into the soul and quickeneth the heart and entereth[6] it by
- His grace into true working, and maketh it pray right blissfully. And
- truly to enjoy our Lord, it is a full blissful thanking in His sight.
- [1] MS.: "_And this in our felyng our foly is cause of our wekenes._"
- S. de Cressy: "And thus in our feelings our folly is cause of our
- weakness."
- [2] "of" = by, from.
- [3] "inderly" = inwardly--or from the heart: heartily, as in lxvi.
- [4] _i.e._ Faculties.--MS. "Mights."
- [5] "Grante mercy" = _grand-merci_.
- [6] "entrith," leadeth.
- CHAPTER XLII
- "Prayer is a right understanding of that fulness of joy that is to
- come, with accordant longing and sure trust"
- Our Lord God willeth that we have true understanding, and specially
- in three things that belong to our prayer. The first is: _by whom and
- how that our prayer springeth. By whom_, He sheweth when He saith:
- _I am [the] Ground_; and _how_, by His Goodness: for He saith first:
- _It is my will._ The second is: _in what manner and how we should
- use our prayer_; and that is that our will be turned unto the will
- of our Lord, enjoying: and so meaneth He when He saith: _I make thee
- to will it_. The third is that we should know _the fruit and the end
- of our prayers_: that is, that we be oned and like to our Lord in
- all things; and to this intent and for this end was all this lovely
- lesson shewed. And He will help us, and we shall make it so as He saith
- Himself;--Blessed may He be!
- For this is our Lord's will, that our prayer and our trust be both
- alike large. For if we trust not as much as we pray, we do not full
- worship to our Lord in our prayer, and also we tarry[1] and pain our
- self. The cause is, as I believe, that we know not truly that our Lord
- is [the] Ground on whom our prayer springeth; and also that we know not
- that it is given us by the grace of His love. For if we knew this, it
- would make us to trust to have, of our Lord's gift, all that we desire.
- For I am sure that no man asketh mercy and grace with true meaning, but
- if mercy and grace be first given to him.
- But sometimes it cometh to our mind that we have prayed long time, and
- yet we think to ourselves that we have not our asking. But herefor
- should we not be in heaviness. For I am sure, by our Lord's signifying,
- that either we abide a better time, or more grace, or a better gift. He
- willeth that we have true knowing in Himself that He is Being; and in
- this knowing He willeth that our understanding be grounded, with all
- our mights and all our intent and all our meaning; and in this ground
- He willeth that we take our place and our dwelling, and by the gracious
- light of Himself He willeth that we have understanding of the things
- that follow. The first is our noble and excellent making; the second,
- our precious and dearworthy again-buying; the third, all-thing that
- He hath made beneath us, [He hath made] to serve us, and for our love
- keepeth it. Then signifieth He thus, as if He said: _Behold and see
- that I have done all this before thy prayers; and now thou art, and
- prayest me_. And thus He signifieth that it belongeth to us to learn
- that the greatest deeds be [already] done, as Holy Church teacheth; and
- in the beholding of this, with thanking, we ought to pray for the deed
- that is now in doing: and that is, that He rule and guide us, to His
- worship, in this life, and bring us to His bliss. And therefor He hath
- done all.
- Then signifieth He thus: that we [should] see that He doeth it, and
- that we [should] pray therefor. For the one is not enough. For if we
- pray and see not that He doeth it, it maketh us heavy and doubtful; and
- that is not His worship. And if we see that He doeth, and we pray not,
- we do not our debt, and so may it not be: that is to say, so is it not
- [the thing that is] in His beholding. But to see that He doeth it, and
- to pray forthwithal,--so is he worshipped and we sped. All-thing that
- our Lord hath ordained to do, it is His will that we pray therefor,
- either in special or in general. And the joy and the bliss that it is
- to Him, and the thanks and the worship that we shall have therefor, it
- passeth the understanding of creatures, as to my sight.
- For prayer is a right[2] understanding of that fulness of joy that is
- to come, with well-longing and sure trust. Failing of our bliss that we
- be kindly ordained to, maketh us to long; true understanding and love,
- with sweet mind in our Saviour, graciously maketh us to trust. And in
- these two workings our Lord beholdeth us continually[3]: for it is our
- due part, and His Goodness may no less assign to us.
- Thus it belongeth to us to do our diligence; and when we have done it,
- then shall us yet think that [it] is nought,--and sooth it is. But
- if we do as we can, and ask, in truth, for mercy and grace, all that
- faileth us we shall find in Him. And thus signifieth He where He saith:
- _I am Ground of thy beseeching_. And thus in this blessed word, with
- the Shewing, I saw a full overcoming against all our weakness and all
- our doubtful dreads.
- [1] _i.e._ torment, tire, hinder.
- [2] "rythwis" = right manner of.
- [3] Or: 'And for these two workings our Lord looketh to us
- continually.' See above: "so is it not in His beholding," and chap.
- xliii. "for He beholdeth us in love and would make us partners of His
- good deed."
- CHAPTER XLIII
- "Prayer uniteth the soul to God"
- Prayer oneth the soul to God. For though the soul be ever like to
- God in kind and substance, restored by grace, it is often unlike in
- condition, by sin on man's part. Then is prayer a witness that the soul
- willeth as God willeth; and it comforteth the conscience and enableth
- man to grace. And thus He teacheth us to pray, and mightily to trust
- that we shall have it. For He beholdeth us in love and would make us
- partners of His good deed, and therefore He stirreth us to pray for
- that which it pleaseth him to do. For which prayer and good will, that
- we have of His gift, He will reward us and give us endless meed.
- And this was shewed in this word: _And thou beseechest it_. In this
- word God shewed so great pleasance and so great content, as though He
- were much beholden to us for every good deed that we do (and yet it
- is _He_ that doeth it) because that we beseech Him mightily to do all
- things that seem to Him good: as if He said: _What might then please me
- more than to beseech me, mightily, wisely, and earnestly, to do that
- thing that I shall do?_
- And thus the soul by prayer accordeth to God.
- But when our courteous Lord of His grace sheweth Himself to our soul,
- we have that [which] we desire. And then we see not, for the time,
- what we should more pray, but all our intent with all our might is
- set wholly to the beholding of Him. And this is an high unperceivable
- prayer, as to my sight: for all the cause wherefor we pray it, is oned
- into the sight and beholding of Him to whom we pray; marvellously
- enjoying with reverent dread, and with so great sweetness and delight
- in Him that we can pray right nought but as He stirreth us, for the
- time. And well I wot, the more the soul seeth of God, the more it
- desireth Him by His grace.
- But when we see Him not so, then feel we need and cause to pray,
- because of failing, for enabling of our self, to Jesus. For when the
- soul is tempested, troubled, and left to itself by unrest, then it is
- time to pray, for to make itself pliable and obedient[1] to God. (But
- the soul by no manner of prayer maketh God pliant to it: for He is ever
- alike in love.)
- And this I saw: that what time we see needs wherefor we pray, then
- our _good Lord followeth us_, helping our desire; and when we of His
- special grace plainly behold Him, seeing none other needs, then _we
- follow Him_ and He draweth us unto Him by love. For I saw and felt that
- His marvellous and plentiful Goodness fulfilleth all our powers; and
- therewith I saw that His continuant working in all manner of things is
- done so goodly, so wisely, and so mightily, that it overpasseth all our
- imagining, and all that we can ween and think; and then we can do no
- more but behold Him, enjoying, with an high, mighty desire to be all
- oned unto Him,--centred to His dwelling,--and enjoy in His loving and
- delight in His goodness.
- And then shall we, with His sweet grace, in our own meek continuant
- prayer come unto Him now in this life by many privy touchings of sweet
- spiritual sights and feeling, measured to us as our simpleness may bear
- it. And this is wrought, and shall be, by the grace of the Holy Ghost,
- so long till we shall die in longing, for love. And then shall we all
- come into our Lord, our Self clearly knowing, and God fully having;
- and we shall endlessly be all had in God: Him verily seeing and fully
- feeling, Him spiritually hearing, and Him delectably in-breathing, and
- [of] Him sweetly drinking.[2]
- And then shall we see God face to face, homely and fully. The creature
- that is made shall see and endlessly behold God which is the Maker.
- For thus may no man see God and live after, that is to say, in this
- deadly life. But when He of His special grace will shew Himself here,
- He strengtheneth the creature above its self, and He measureth the
- Shewing, after His own will, as it is profitable for the time.
- [1] "supple and buxum."
- [2] To express the fulness of spiritual perception the mystic seizes
- on all the five sense-perceptions as symbols. For the last word S.
- de Cressy gives again the word "smelling" (rendered here, above, by
- "in-breathing"). Collins reads the Brit. Mus. MS. as "following"; but
- the word there is "swelowyng" = swallowing.
- _ANENT CERTAIN POINTS IN THE FOREGOING FOURTEEN REVELATIONS_
- CHAPTER XLIV
- "God is endless, sovereign Truth,--Wisdom,--Love, not-made; and man's
- Soul is a creature in God which hath the same properties made"
- God shewed in all the Revelations, oftentimes, that man worketh
- evermore His will and His worship lastingly without any stinting. And
- _what_ this work is, was shewed in the First, and that in a marvellous
- example: for it was shewed in the working of the soul of our blissful
- Lady, Saint Mary: [that is, the working of] Truth and Wisdom.[1] And
- _how_ [it is done] I hope by the grace of the Holy Ghost I shall tell,
- as I saw.
- Truth seeth God, and Wisdom beholdeth God, and of these two cometh the
- third: that is, a holy marvellous[2] delight in God; which is Love.
- Where Truth and Wisdom are verily, there is Love verily, coming of
- them both. And all of God's making: for He is endless sovereign Truth,
- endless sovereign Wisdom, endless sovereign Love, unmade; and man's
- Soul is a creature in God which hath the same properties _made_,[3]
- and evermore it doeth that it was made for: it seeth God, it beholdeth
- God, and it loveth God. Whereof God enjoyeth in the creature; and the
- creature in God, endlessly marvelling.
- In which marvelling he seeth his God, his Lord, his Maker so high, so
- great, and so good, in comparison with him that is made, that scarcely
- the creature seemeth ought to the self. But the clarity and the
- clearness of Truth and Wisdom maketh him to see and to bear witness[4]
- that he is made for Love: in which God endlessly keepeth him.
- [1] See chap. iv.
- [2] _i.e. marvelling._
- [3] chaps. liv., lv.
- [4] "beknowen."
- CHAPTER XLV
- "All heavenly things and all earthly things that belong to Heaven are
- comprehended in these two judgments"
- God deemeth us [looking] upon our Nature-Substance, which is ever
- kept one in Him, whole and safe without end: and _this_ doom is
- [because] of His rightfulness [in the which it is made and kept]. And
- man judgeth [looking] upon our changeable Sense-soul, which seemeth
- now one [thing], now other,--according as it taketh of the [higher or
- lower] parts,--and [is that which] showeth outward. And _this_ wisdom
- [of man's judgment] is _mingled_ [because of the diverse things it
- beholdeth]. For sometimes it is good and easy, and sometimes it is hard
- and grievous. And in as much as it is good and easy it belongeth to the
- rightfulness; and in as much as it is hard and grievous [by reason of
- the sin beheld, which sheweth in our Sense-soul,] our good Lord Jesus
- reformeth it by [the working in our Sense-soul of] mercy and grace
- through the virtue of His blessed Passion, and so bringeth it to the
- rightfulness.
- And though these two [judgments] be thus accorded and oned, yet both
- shall be known in Heaven without end. The first doom, which is of
- God's rightfulness, is [because] of His high endless life [in our
- Substance]; and this is that fair sweet doom that was shewed in all the
- fair Revelation, in which I saw Him assign to us no manner of blame.
- But though this was sweet and delectable, yet in the beholding only of
- this, I could not be fully eased: and that was because of the doom of
- Holy Church, which I had afore understood and which was continually
- in my sight. And therefore by _this_ doom methought I understood that
- sinners are worthy sometime of blame and wrath; but these two could
- I not see in God; and therefore my desire was more than I can or may
- tell. For the higher doom was shewed by God Himself in that same time,
- and therefore me behoved needs to take it; and the lower doom was
- learned me afore in Holy Church, and therefore I might in no way leave
- the lower doom. Then was this my desire: that I might see in God in
- what manner that which the doom of Holy Church teacheth is true in His
- sight, and how it belongeth to me verily to know it; whereby the two
- dooms might both be saved, so as it were worshipful to God and right
- way to me.
- And to all this I had none other answer but a marvellous example of a
- lord and of a servant, as I shall tell after: and that full mistily
- shewed.[1] And yet I stand desiring, and will unto my end, that I might
- by grace know these two dooms as it belongeth to me. For all heavenly,
- and all earthly things that belong to Heaven, are comprehended in
- these two dooms. And the more understanding, by the gracious leading
- of the Holy Ghost, that we have of these two dooms, the more we shall
- see and know our failings. And ever the more that we see them, the
- more, of nature, by grace, we shall long to be fulfilled of endless joy
- and bliss. For we are made thereto, and our Nature-Substance is now
- blissful in God, and hath been since it was made, and shall be without
- end.
- [1] Chap. li.
- CHAPTER XLVI
- "It is needful to see and to know that we are sinners: wherefore we
- deserve pain and wrath." "He is God: Good, Life, Truth, Love, Peace:
- His Clarity and His Unity suffereth Him not to be wroth"
- But our passing life that we have here in our sense-soul knoweth not
- what our Self is. [And when we verily and clearly see and know what
- our Self is][1] then shall we verily and clearly see and know our Lord
- God in fulness of joy. And therefore it behoveth needs to be that the
- nearer we be to our bliss, the more we shall long [after it]: and
- that both by nature and by grace. We may have knowing of our Self in
- this life by continuant help and virtue of our high Nature. In which
- knowing we may exercise and grow, by forwarding and speeding of mercy
- and grace; but we may never fully know our Self until the last point:
- in which point this passing life and manner of pain and woe shall have
- an end. And therefore it belongeth properly to us, both by nature and
- by grace, to long and desire with all our mights to know our Self in
- fulness of endless joy.
- And yet in all this time, from the beginning to the end, I had two
- manner of beholdings. The one was endless continuant love, with
- secureness of keeping, and blissful salvation,--for of this was all
- _the Shewing_. The other was of the common teaching of Holy Church, in
- which I was afore informed and grounded--and with all my will having in
- use and understanding. And the beholding of _this_ went not from me:
- for by the Shewing I was not stirred nor led therefrom in no manner
- of point, but I had therein teaching to love it and find it good[2]:
- whereby I might, by the help of our Lord and His grace, increase and
- rise to more heavenly knowing and higher loving.
- And thus in all the Beholding methought it was needful to see and to
- know that we are sinners, and do many evils that we ought to leave,
- and leave many good deeds undone that we ought to do: wherefore we
- deserve pain and wrath. And notwithstanding all this, I saw soothfastly
- that our Lord was never wroth, nor ever shall be. For He is God: Good,
- Life, Truth, Love, Peace; His Clarity[3] and His Unity suffereth Him
- not to be wroth. For I saw truly that it is against the property of
- His Might to be wroth, and against the property of His Wisdom, and
- against the property of His Goodness. God is the Goodness that may not
- be wroth, for He is not [other] but Goodness: our soul is oned to Him,
- unchangeable Goodness, and between God and our soul is neither wrath
- nor forgiveness in His sight. For our soul is so fully oned to God of
- His own Goodness that between God and our soul may be right nought.
- And to this understanding was the soul led by love and drawn by might
- in every Shewing: _that it is thus_ our good Lord shewed, and _how it
- is thus in truth of His great Goodness_. And He willeth that we desire
- to learn it--that is to say, as far as it belongeth to His creature
- to learn it. For all things that the simple soul[4] understood, God
- willeth that they be shewed and [made] known. For the things that He
- will have privy, mightily and wisely Himself He hideth them, for love.
- For I saw in the same Shewing that much privity is hid, which may never
- be known until the time that God of His goodness hath made us worthy
- to see it; and therewith I am well-content, abiding our Lord's will in
- this high marvel. And now I yield me to my Mother, Holy Church, as a
- simple child oweth.
- [1] So S. de Cressy has it. There is evidently an omission in the MS.
- of part of this sentence. See lvi., lxxii. The dim sight of God comes
- before the dim sight of the Self, but the clear sight of God comes
- after the clear sight of the Self.
- [2] "like it."
- [3] Cressy has: "He is Peace; and His Might, His Wisdom, His Charity,
- and His Unity," etc.
- [4] Chap. ii. "a simple creature"; "the soul," xxiv., xiii., etc., and
- xxxii. p. 64.
- CHAPTER XLVII
- "We fail oftentimes of the sight of Him, and anon we fall into our
- self, and then find we no feeling of right,--nought but contrariness
- that is in our self"
- Two things belong to our soul as duty: the one is that we reverently
- marvel, the other that we meekly suffer, ever enjoying in God. For He
- would have us understand that we shall in short time see clearly in
- Himself all that we desire.
- And notwithstanding all this, I beheld and marvelled greatly: _What
- is the mercy and forgiveness of God?_ For by the teaching that I had
- afore, I understood that the mercy of God should be the forgiveness of
- His wrath after the time that we have sinned. For methought that to a
- soul whose meaning and desire is to love, the wrath of God was harder
- than any other pain, and therefore I took[1] that the forgiveness of
- His wrath should be one of the principal points of His mercy. But
- howsoever I might behold and desire, I could in no wise see this point
- in all the Shewing.[2]
- But how I understood and saw of the work of mercy, I shall tell
- somewhat, as God will give me grace. I understood this: Man is
- changeable in this life, and by frailty and overcoming falleth into
- sin: he is weak and unwise of himself, and also his will is overlaid.
- And in this time he is in tempest and in sorrow and woe; and the cause
- is blindness: for he seeth not God. For if he saw God continually,
- he should have no mischievous feeling, nor any manner of motion or
- yearning that serveth to sin.[3]
- Thus saw I, and felt in the same time; and methought that the sight and
- the feeling was high and plenteous and gracious in comparison with that
- which our common feeling is in this life; but yet I thought it was but
- small and low in comparison with the great desire that the soul hath to
- see God.
- For I felt in me five manner of workings, which be these: Enjoying,
- mourning, desire, dread, and sure hope. Enjoying: for God gave me
- understanding and knowing that it was Himself that I saw; mourning:
- and that was for failing; desire: and that was I might see Him ever
- more and more, understanding and knowing that we shall never have
- full rest till we see Him verily and clearly in heaven; dread was:
- for it seemed to me in all that time that that sight should fail, and
- I be left to myself; sure hope was in the endless love: that I saw I
- should be kept by His mercy and brought to His bliss. And the joying
- in His sight with this sure hope of His merciful keeping made me to
- have feeling and comfort so that mourning and dread were not greatly
- painful. And yet in all this I beheld in the Shewing of God that this
- manner of sight may not be continuant in this life,--and that for His
- own worship and for increase of our endless joy. And therefore we fail
- oftentimes of the sight of Him, and anon we fall into our self, and
- then find we no feeling of right,--naught but contrariness that is in
- our self; and that of the elder root of our first sin,[4] with all the
- sins that follow, of our contrivance. And in this we are in travail and
- tempest[5] with feeling of sins, and of pain in many divers manners,
- spiritual and bodily, as it is known to us in this life.
- [1] understood--took it.
- [2] "But for nowte that I myte beholden and desyrin I could not se."
- [3] "ne no manner steryng ne [or _ye_ = the] yernyng."
- [4] _i.e._ contrariness, springing from the beginning of sin in the
- first fall of man.
- [5] "traveylid and tempested."
- CHAPTER XLVIII
- "I beheld the property of Mercy, and I beheld the property of Grace:
- which have two manners of working in one love"
- But our good Lord the Holy Ghost, which is endless life dwelling in
- our soul, full securely keepeth us; and worketh therein a peace and
- bringeth it to ease by grace, and accordeth it to God and maketh it
- pliant.[1] And this is the mercy and the way that our Lord continually
- leadeth us in as long as we be here in this life which is changeable.
- For I saw no wrath but on man's part; and that forgiveth He in us.
- For wrath is not else but a forwardness and a contrariness to peace
- and love; and either it cometh of failing of might, or of failing of
- wisdom, or of failing of goodness: which failing is not in God, but is
- on our part. For we by sin and wretchedness have in us a wretched and
- continuant contrariness to peace and to love. And that shewed He full
- often in His lovely Regard of Ruth and Pity.[2] For the ground of mercy
- is love, and the working of mercy is our keeping in love. And this was
- shewed in such manner that I could[3] not have perceived of the part of
- mercy but as it were alone in love; that is to say, as to my sight.
- Mercy is a sweet gracious working in love, mingled with plenteous pity:
- for mercy worketh in keeping us, and mercy worketh turning to us all
- things to good. Mercy, by love, suffereth us to fail in measure and
- in as much as we fail, in so much we fall; and in as much as we fall,
- in so much we die: for it needs must be that we die in so much as we
- fail of the sight and feeling of God that is our life. Our failing is
- dreadful, our falling is shameful, and our dying is sorrowful: but in
- all this the sweet eye of pity and love is lifted never off us, nor the
- working of mercy ceaseth.[4]
- For I beheld the property of mercy, and I beheld the property of
- grace: which have two manners of working in one love. Mercy is a
- pitiful property which belongeth to the Motherhood in tender love; and
- grace is a worshipful property which belongeth to the royal Lordship
- in the same love. Mercy worketh: keeping, suffering, quickening, and
- healing; and all is tenderness of love. And grace worketh: raising,
- rewarding, endlessly overpassing that which our longing and our travail
- deserveth, spreading abroad and shewing the high plenteous largess[5]
- of God's royal Lordship in His marvellous courtesy; and this is of
- the abundance of love. For grace worketh our dreadful failing into
- plenteous, endless solace; and grace worketh our shameful falling into
- high, worshipful rising; and grace worketh our sorrowful dying into
- holy, blissful life.
- For I saw full surely that ever as our contrariness worketh to us here
- in earth pain, shame, and sorrow, right so, on the contrary wise, grace
- worketh to us in heaven solace, worship, and bliss; and overpassing.
- And so far forth, that when we come up and receive the sweet reward
- which grace hath wrought for us, then we shall thank and bless our
- Lord, endlessly rejoicing that ever we suffered woe. And that shall be
- for a property of blessed love that we shall know in God which we could
- never have known without woe going before.
- And when I saw all this, it behoved me needs to grant that the mercy of
- God and the forgiveness is to slacken and waste _our_ wrath.
- [1] "buxum" = ready to bend or obey.
- [2] "lovely chere," loving Look. See li., lxxi., etc.
- [3] "I cowth not a perceyven of."
- [4] "But in all this the swete eye of pite and love cumith never of us,
- ne the werkyng of mercy cesyth not."
- [5] or largeness.
- CHAPTER XLIX
- "Where our Lord appeareth, peace is taken, and wrath hath no place."
- "Immediately is the soul made at one with God when it is truly set at
- peace in itself"
- For this was an high marvel to the soul which was continually shewed in
- all the Revelations, and was with great diligence beholden, that our
- Lord God, anent Himself may not forgive, for He may not be wroth: it
- were impossible. For this was shewed: that our life is all grounded and
- rooted in love, and without love we may not live; and therefore to the
- soul that of His special grace seeth so far into the high, marvellous
- Goodness of God, and seeth that we are endlessly oned to Him in love,
- it is the most impossible that may be, that God should be wroth.
- For wrath and friendship be two contraries. For He that wasteth and
- destroyeth our wrath and maketh us meek and mild,--it behoveth needs
- to be that He [Himself] be ever one in love, meek and mild: which is
- contrary to wrath.
- For I saw full surely that where our Lord appeareth, peace is taken and
- wrath hath no place. For I saw no manner of wrath in God, neither for
- short time nor for long;--for in sooth, as to my sight, if God might
- be wroth for an instant,[1] we should never have life nor place nor
- being. For as verily as we have our being of the endless Might of God
- and of the endless Wisdom and of the endless Goodness, so verily we
- have our keeping in the endless Might of God, in the endless Wisdom,
- and in the endless Goodness. For though we feel in ourselves, [frail]
- wretches, debates and strifes, yet are we all-mannerful enclosed in
- the mildness of God and in His meekness, in His benignity and in His
- graciousness.[2] For I saw full surely that all our endless friendship,
- our place, our life and our being, is in God.
- For that same endless Goodness that keepeth us when we sin, that we
- perish not, the same endless Goodness continually treateth in us a
- peace against our wrath and our contrarious falling, and maketh us to
- see our need with a true dread, and mightily to seek unto God to have
- forgiveness, with a gracious desire of our salvation. And though we, by
- the wrath and the contrariness that is in us, be now in tribulation,
- distress, and woe, as falleth to our blindness and frailty, yet are we
- _securely_ safe by the merciful keeping of God, that we perish not.
- But we are not _blissfully_ safe, in having of our endless joy, till
- we be all in peace and in love: that is to say, full pleased with God
- and with all His works, and with all His judgments, and loving and
- peaceable with our self and with our even-Christians and with all that
- God loveth, as love beseemeth.[3] And this doeth God's Goodness in us.
- Thus saw I that God is our very Peace, and He is our sure Keeper when
- we are ourselves in unpeace, and He continually worketh to bring us
- into endless peace. And thus when we, by the working of mercy and
- grace, be made meek and mild, we are fully safe; suddenly is the soul
- oned to God when it is truly peaced in itself: for in Him is found no
- wrath. And thus I saw when we are all in peace and in love, we find
- no contrariness, nor no manner of letting through that contrariness
- which is now in us; [nay], our Lord of His Goodness maketh it to us
- full profitable. For that contrariness is cause of our tribulations
- and all our woe, and our Lord Jesus taketh them and sendeth them up to
- Heaven, and there are they made more sweet and delectable than heart
- may think or tongue may tell. And when we come thither we shall find
- them ready, all turned into very fair and endless worships. Thus is
- God our steadfast Ground: and He shall be our full bliss and make us
- unchangeable, as He is, when we are there.
- [1] "a touch."
- [2] "buxumhede."
- [3] "liketh."
- CHAPTER L
- "The blame of our sin continually hangeth upon us." "In the sight of
- God the soul that shall be saved was never dead, nor ever shall be dead"
- And in this life mercy and forgiveness is our way and evermore leadeth
- us to grace. And by the tempest and the sorrow that we fall into on our
- part, we be often dead as to man's doom in earth; but in the sight of
- God the soul that shall be saved was never dead, nor ever shall be.
- But yet here I wondered and marvelled with all the diligence of my
- soul, saying thus within me: _Good Lord, I see Thee that art very
- Truth; and I know in truth[1] that we sin grievously every day and be
- much blameworthy; and I may neither leave the knowing of Thy truth,[2]
- nor do I see Thee shew to us any manner of blame. How may this be?_
- For I knew by the common teaching of Holy Church and by mine own
- feeling, that the blame of our sin continually hangeth upon us, from
- the first man unto the time that we come up unto heaven: then was this
- my marvel that I saw our Lord God shewing to us no more blame than if
- we were as clean and as holy as Angels be in heaven. And between these
- two contraries my reason was greatly travailed through my blindness,
- and could have no rest for dread that His blessed presence should pass
- from my sight and I be left in unknowing [of] how He beholdeth us in
- our sin. For either [it] behoved me to see in God that sin was all done
- away, or else me behoved to see in God how He seeth it, whereby I might
- truly know how it belongeth to me to see sin, and the manner of our
- blame. My longing endured, Him continually beholding;--and yet I could
- have no patience for great straits[3] and perplexity, thinking: _If I
- take it thus that we be no sinners and not blameworthy, it seemeth as I
- should err and fail of knowing of this truth[4]; and if it be so that
- we be sinners and blameworthy,--Good Lord, how may it then be that I
- cannot see this true thing[5] in Thee, which art my God, my Maker, in
- whom I desire to see all truths?_[6]
- For three points make me hardy to ask it. The first is, because it is
- so low a thing: for if it were an high thing I should be a-dread. The
- second is, that it is so common: for if it were special and privy, also
- I should be a-dread. The third is, that it needeth me to know it (as
- methinketh) if I shall live here for knowing of good and evil, whereby
- I may, by reason and grace, the more dispart them asunder, and love
- goodness and hate evil, as Holy Church teacheth. I cried inwardly,
- with all my might seeking unto God for help, saying thus: _Ah! Lord
- Jesus, King of bliss, how shall I be eased? Who shall teach me and tell
- me that [thing] me needeth to know, if I may not at this time see it in
- Thee?_
- [1] "sothly."
- [2] "sothe."
- [3] "awer," liii. note 1.
- [4] "soth."
- [5] "sothnes."
- [6] "trueths."
- CHAPTER LI
- "He is the Head, and we be His members." "Therefore our Father nor may
- nor will more blame assign to us than to His own Son, precious and
- worthy Christ"
- And then our Courteous Lord answered in shewing full mistily a
- wonderful example of a Lord that hath a Servant: and He gave me sight
- to my understanding of both. Which sight was shewed doubly in the
- Lord and doubly in the Servant: the one part was shewed spiritually
- in bodily likeness, and the other part was shewed more spiritually,
- without bodily likeness.
- For the first [sight], thus, I saw two persons in bodily likeness: that
- is to say, a Lord and a Servant; and therewith God gave me spiritual
- understanding. The Lord sitteth stately in rest and in peace; the
- Servant standeth by afore his Lord reverently, ready to do his Lord's
- will. The Lord looketh upon his Servant full lovingly and sweetly, and
- meekly he sendeth him to a certain place to do his will. The Servant
- not only he goeth, but suddenly he starteth, and runneth in great
- haste, for love to do his Lord's will. And anon he falleth into a
- slade,[1] and taketh full great hurt. And then he groaneth and moaneth
- and waileth and struggleth, but he neither may rise nor help himself by
- no manner of way.
- And of all this the most mischief[2] that I saw him in, was failing of
- comfort: for he could not turn his face to look upon his loving Lord,
- which was to him full near,--in Whom is full comfort;--but as a man
- that was feeble and unwise for the time, he turned his mind[3] to his
- feeling and endured in woe.
- In which woe he suffered seven great pains. The first was the sore
- bruising that he took in his falling, which was to him feelable pain;
- the second was the heaviness of his body; the third was feebleness
- following from these two; the fourth, that he was blinded in his reason
- and stunned in his mind, so far forth that almost he had forgotten his
- own love; the fifth was that he might not rise; the sixth was most
- marvellous to me, and that was that he lay all alone: I looked all
- about and beheld, and far nor near, high nor low, I saw to him no help;
- the seventh was that the place which he lay on was a long, hard, and
- grievous [place].
- I marvelled how this Servant might meekly suffer there all this woe,
- and I beheld with carefulness to learn if I could perceive in him any
- fault, or if the Lord should assign to him any blame. And in sooth
- there was none seen: for only his goodwill and his great desire was
- cause of his falling; and he was unlothful, and as good inwardly as
- when he stood afore his Lord, ready to do his will. And right thus
- continually his loving Lord full tenderly beholdeth him. But now with
- a _double_ manner of Regard: one outward, full meekly and mildly,
- with great ruth and pity,--and this was of the first [sight], another
- _inward,_ more spiritually,--and this was shewed with a leading of mine
- understanding into the Lord, [in the] which I saw Him highly rejoicing
- for the worshipful restoring that He will and shall bring His Servant
- to by His plenteous grace; and this was of that other shewing.
- And now [was] my understanding led again into the first [sight]; both
- keeping in mind. Then saith this courteous Lord in his meaning: _Lo,
- lo, my loved Servant, what harm and distress he hath taken in my
- service for my love,--yea, and for his goodwill. Is it not fitting that
- I award him [for] his affright and his dread, his hurt and his maim
- and all his woe? And not only this, but falleth it not to me to give
- a gift that [shall] be better to him, and more worshipful, than his
- own wholeness should have been?--or else methinketh I should do him no
- grace._
- And in this an inward spiritual Shewing of the Lord's meaning descended
- into my soul: in which I saw that it behoveth needs to be, by virtue of
- His great [Goodness] and His own worship, that His dearworthy Servant,
- which He loved so much, should be verily and blissfully rewarded, above
- that he should have been if he had not fallen. Yea, and so far forth,
- that his falling and his woe, that he hath taken thereby, shall be
- turned into high and overpassing worship and endless bliss.
- And at this point the shewing of the example vanished, and our good
- Lord led forth mine understanding in sight and in shewing of the
- Revelation to the end. But notwithstanding all this forth-leading, the
- marvelling over the example went never from me: for methought it was
- given me for an answer to my desire, and yet could I not take therein
- full understanding to mine ease at that time. For in the Servant that
- was shewed for Adam, as I shall tell, I saw many diverse properties
- that might in no manner of way be assigned[4] to single Adam. And
- thus in that time I stood for much part in unknowing: for the full
- understanding of this marvellous example was not given me in that time.
- In which mighty example three properties of the Revelation be yet
- greatly hid; and notwithstanding this [further forthleading], I saw and
- understood that every Shewing is full of secret things [left hid].
- And therefore me behoveth now to tell three properties in which I
- am somewhat eased. The first is the beginning of teaching that I
- understood therein, in the same time; the second is the inward teaching
- that I have understood therein afterward; the third, all the whole
- Revelation from the beginning to the end (that is to say of this Book)
- which our Lord God of His goodness bringeth oftentimes freely to the
- sight of mine understanding. And these three are so oned, as to my
- understanding, that I cannot, nor may, dispart them. And by these
- three, as one, I have teaching whereby I ought to believe and trust in
- our Lord God, that of the same goodness of which He shewed it, and for
- the same end, right so, of the same goodness and for the same end He
- shall declare it to us when it is His will.
- For, twenty years after the time of the Shewing, save three months,
- I had teaching inwardly, as I shall tell: _It belongeth to thee to
- take heed to all the properties and conditions that were shewed in the
- example, though thou think that they be misty and indifferent[5] to thy
- sight_. I assented willingly, with great desire, and inwardly [beheld]
- with heedfulness[6] all the points and properties that were shewed in
- the same time, as far forth as my wits and understanding would serve:
- beginning my beholding at the Lord and at the Servant, and the manner
- of sitting of the Lord, and the place that he sat on, and the colour of
- his clothing and the manner of shape, and his countenance without, and
- his nobleness and his goodness within; at the manner of standing of the
- Servant, and the place where, and how; at his manner of clothing, the
- colour and the shape; at his outward having and at his inward goodness
- and his unloathfulness.
- The Lord that sat stately in rest and in peace, I understood that He is
- God. The Servant that stood afore the Lord, I understood that it was
- shewed for Adam: that is to say, one man was shewed, that time, and his
- falling, to make it thereby understood how God beholdeth All-Man and
- his falling. For in the sight of God all man is one man, and one man
- is all man. This man was hurt in his might and made full feeble; and
- he was stunned in his understanding so that he [was] turned from the
- beholding of his Lord. But his will was kept whole in God's sight;--for
- his will I saw our Lord commend and approve. But himself was letted and
- blinded from the knowing of this will; and this is to him great sorrow
- and grievous distress: for neither doth he see clearly his loving Lord,
- which is to him full meek and mild, nor doth he see truly what himself
- is in the sight of his loving Lord. And well I wot when these two are
- wisely and truly seen, we shall get rest and peace here in part, and
- the fulness of the bliss of Heaven, by His plenteous grace.
- And this was a beginning of teaching which I saw in the same time,
- whereby I might come to know in what manner He beholdeth us in our sin.
- And then I saw that only Pain blameth and punisheth, and our courteous
- Lord comforteth and sorroweth; and ever He is to the soul in glad
- Cheer, loving, and longing to bring us to His bliss.
- The place that the Lord sat on was simple, on the earth, barren and
- desert, alone in wilderness; his clothing was ample and full seemly,
- as falleth to a Lord; the colour of his cloth was blue as azure, most
- sad and fair, his cheer was merciful; the colour of his face was
- fair-brown,--with full seemly features; his eyes were black, most fair
- and seemly, shewing [_outward_] full of lovely _pity_, and [shewing],
- _within_ him, an high Regard,[7] long and broad, all full of endless
- heavens. And the lovely looking wherewith He looked upon His Servant
- continually,--and especially in his falling,--methought it might melt
- our hearts for love and burst them in two for joy. The fair looking
- shewed [itself] of a seemly mingledness which was marvellous to behold:
- the one [part] was Ruth and Pity, the other was Joy and Bliss. The
- Joy and Bliss passeth as far Ruth and Pity as Heaven is above earth:
- the Pity was earthly and the Bliss was heavenly: the Ruth and Pity of
- the Father was [in regard] of the falling of Adam, which is His most
- loved creature; the Joy and Bliss was [in regard] of His dearworthy
- Son, which is even with the Father. The Merciful Beholding of His
- Countenance[8] of love fulfilled all earth and descended down with Adam
- into hell, with which continuant pity Adam was kept from endless death.
- And thus Mercy and Pity dwelleth with mankind unto the time we come up
- into Heaven.
- But man is blinded in this life and therefore we may not see our
- Father, God, as He is. And what time that He of His goodness
- willeth to shew Himself to man, He sheweth Himself homely, as man.
- Notwithstanding, I reason, in verity[9] we ought to know and believe
- that the Father is not man.
- But his sitting on the earth barren and desert, is to signify this:--He
- made man's soul to be His own City and His dwelling-place: which is
- most pleasing to Him of all His works. And what time that man was
- fallen into sorrow and pain, he was not all seemly to serve in that
- noble office; and therefore our Lord Father would prepare Himself
- no other place, but would sit upon the earth abiding mankind, which
- is mingled with earth, till what time by His grace His dearworthy
- Son had brought again His City into the noble fairness with His hard
- travail. The blueness of the clothing betokeneth His steadfastness; the
- brownness of his fair face, with the seemly blackness of the eyes, was
- most accordant to shew His holy soberness. The length and breadth of
- his garments, which were fair, flaming about, betokeneth that He hath,
- beclosed in Him, all Heavens, and all Joy and Bliss:[10] and this was
- shewed in a touch [of time], where I have said: _Mine understanding
- was led into the Lord_; in which [inward shewing] I saw Him highly
- _rejoice_ for the worshipful restoring that He will and shall bring His
- servant to by His plenteous grace.
- And yet I marvelled, beholding the Lord and the Servant aforesaid. I
- saw the Lord sit stately, and the Servant standing reverently afore his
- Lord. In which Servant there is double understanding, one _without_,
- another _within. Outwardly_:--he was clad simply, as a labourer which
- were got ready for his toil;[11] and he stood full near the Lord--not
- evenly in front[12] of him, but in part to one side, on the left. His
- clothing was a white kirtle, single, old, and all defaced, dyed with
- sweat of his body, strait-fitting to him, and short--as it were an
- handful beneath the knee; [thread]bare, seeming as it should soon be
- worn out, ready to be ragged and rent. And of this I marvelled greatly,
- thinking: this is now an unseemly clothing for the Servant that is so
- greatly loved to stand in afore so worshipful a Lord. And _inwardly_ in
- him was shewed a ground of love: which love that he had to the Lord was
- even-like[13] to the love that the Lord had to him.
- The wisdom of the Servant saw inwardly that there was one thing to
- do which should be to the worship of the Lord. And the Servant, for
- love, having no regard to himself nor to nothing that might befall
- him, hastily he started and ran at the sending of his Lord, to do that
- thing which was his will and his worship. For it seemed by his outward
- clothing as he had been a continuant labourer of long time, and by the
- _inward sight_ that I had both of the Lord and the Servant it seemed
- that he was a[14] new [one], that is to say, new beginning to travail:
- which Servant was never sent out afore.
- There was a treasure in the earth which the Lord loved. I marvelled and
- thought what it might be, and I was answered in mine understanding: _It
- is a food which is delectable and pleasant to the Lord_. For I saw the
- Lord sit as a man, and I saw neither meat nor drink wherewith to serve
- him. This was one marvel. Another marvel was that this majestic Lord
- had no servant but one, and him he sent out. I beheld, thinking what
- manner of labour it might be that the Servant should do. And then I
- understood that he should do the greatest labour and hardest travail:
- that is, he should be a gardener, delve and dyke, toil and sweat,
- and turn the earth upside-down, and seek the deepness, and water the
- plants in time. And in this he should continue his travail and make
- sweet floods to run, and noble and plenteous fruits to spring, which he
- should bring afore the Lord to serve him therewith to his desire. And
- he should never turn again till he had prepared this food all ready as
- he knew that it pleased the Lord. And then he should take this food,
- with the drink in the food, and bear it full worshipfully afore the
- Lord. And all this time the Lord should sit in the same place, abiding
- his Servant whom he sent out.
- And yet I marvelled from whence the Servant came. For I saw in the Lord
- that HE hath within Himself endless life, and all manner of goodness,
- save that treasure that was in the earth. And [also] _that_ [treasure]
- was grounded in the Lord in marvellous deepness of endless love, but
- it was not all to His worship till the Servant had thus nobly prepared
- it, and brought it before Him in himself present. And without the Lord
- was nothing but wilderness. And I understood not all what this example
- meant, and therefore I marvelled whence the Servant came.
- In the Servant is comprehended the Second Person in the Trinity; and
- in the Servant is comprehended Adam: that is to say, All-Man. And
- therefore when I say the _Son_, it meaneth the Godhead which is even
- with the Father; and when I say the _Servant_, it meaneth Christ's
- Manhood, which is rightful Adam. By the nearness of the Servant is
- understood the Son, and by the standing on the left side is understood
- Adam. The Lord is the Father, God; the Servant is the Son, Christ
- Jesus; the Holy Ghost is Even[15] Love which is in them both.
- When Adam fell, God's Son fell: because of the rightful oneing which
- had been made in heaven, God's Son might not [be disparted] from Adam.
- (For by Adam I understand All-Man.) Adam fell from life to death, into
- the deep[16] of this wretched world, and after that into hell: God's
- Son fell with Adam, into the deep[17] of the Maiden's womb, who was the
- fairest daughter of Adam; and for this end: to excuse Adam from blame
- in heaven and in earth; and mightily He fetched him out of hell.
- By the wisdom and goodness that was in the Servant is understood
- God's Son; by the poor clothing as a labourer standing near the left
- side, is understood the Manhood and Adam, with all the scathe[18] and
- feebleness that followeth. For in all this our good Lord shewed His own
- Son and Adam but _one_ Man. The virtue and the goodness that we have is
- of Jesus Christ, the feebleness and the blindness that we have is of
- Adam: which two were shewed in the Servant.
- And thus hath our good Lord Jesus taken upon Him all our blame, and
- therefore our Father nor may nor will more blame assign to us than to
- His own Son, dearworthy Christ. Thus was He, the Servant, afore His
- coming into earth standing ready afore the Father in purpose, till what
- time He would send Him to do that worshipful deed by which mankind was
- brought again into heaven;--that is to say, notwithstanding that He is
- God, even with the Father as anent the Godhead. But in His foreseeing
- purpose that He would be Man, to save man in fulfilling of His Father's
- will, so He stood afore His Father as a Servant, willingly[19] taking
- upon Him all our charge. And then He started full readily at the
- Father's will, and anon He fell full low, into the Maiden's womb,
- having no regard to Himself nor to His hard pains.
- The white kirtle is the flesh; the singleness is that there was right
- nought atwix the Godhead and Manhood; the straitness is poverty; the
- eld is of Adam's wearing; the defacing, of sweat of Adam's travail; the
- shortness sheweth the Servant's labour.
- And thus I saw the Son saying in His meaning[20]: _Lo! my dear Father,
- I stand before Thee in Adam's kirtle, all ready to start and to run: I
- would be in the earth to do Thy worship when it is Thy will to send me.
- How long shall I desire?_ Full soothfastly wist the Son when it would
- be the Father's will and how long He should desire: that is to say,
- [He wist it] anent the Godhead: for He is the Wisdom of the Father;
- wherefore this question was shewed with understanding of the _Manhood_
- of Christ. For all mankind that shall be saved by the sweet Incarnation
- and blissful Passion of Christ, all is the Manhood of Christ: for He
- is the Head and we be His members. To which members the day and the
- time is unknown when every passing woe and sorrow shall have an end,
- and the everlasting joy and bliss shall be fulfilled; which day and
- time for to see, all the Company of Heaven longeth. And all that shall
- be under heaven that shall come thither, their way is by longing and
- desire. Which desire and longing was shewed in the Servant's standing
- afore the Lord,--or else thus in the Son's standing afore the Father in
- Adam's kirtle. For the longing[21] and desire of all Mankind that shall
- be saved appeared in Jesus: for Jesus is All that shall be saved, and
- All that shall be saved is Jesus. And all of the Charity of God; with
- obedience, meekness, and patience, and virtues that belong to us.
- Also in this marvellous example I have teaching with me as it were
- the beginning of an A.B.C., whereby I have some understanding of
- our Lord's meaning. For the secret things of the Revelation be hid
- therein;--notwithstanding that _all_ the Shewings are full of secret
- things. The _sitting_ of the Father betokeneth His Godhead: that is
- to say, by shewing of rest and peace: for in the Godhead may be no
- travail.[22] And that He shewed Himself as _Lord_, betokeneth His
- [governance] to our manhood. The _standing_ of the Servant betokeneth
- travail; _on one side_, and on the _left_, betokeneth that he was not
- all worthy to stand even-right afore the Lord; his _starting_ was the
- Godhead, and the _running_ was the Manhood: for the Godhead started
- from the Father into the Maiden's womb, falling into the taking of our
- Kind. And in this falling he took great sore: the _sore_ that He took
- was our flesh, in which He had also swiftly feeling of deadly pains.
- That he stood _adread_ before the Lord and not even-right, betokeneth
- that His clothing was not seemly[23] to stand in even-right afore the
- Lord, nor _that_ might not, nor should not, be His office while He
- was a labourer; nor also He might not sit in rest and peace with the
- Lord till He had won His peace rightfully with His hard travail; and
- that he stood by the _left_ side [betokeneth] that the Father left
- His own Son, willingly,[24] in the Manhood to suffer all man's pains,
- without sparing of Him. By that _his kirtle was in point to be ragged
- and rent_, is understood the blows, the scourgings, the thorns and the
- nails, the drawing and the dragging, His tender flesh rending. (As
- I saw in some part [before] how the flesh was rent from the skull,
- falling in pieces until the time when the bleeding ceased, and then
- it began to dry again, cleaving to the bone.) And by the _struggling
- and writhing, groaning and moaning,_ is understood that He might never
- rise almightily from the time that He was fallen into the Maiden's
- womb, till his body was slain and dead, He yielding the soul into the
- Father's hands with all Mankind for whom He was sent.
- And at this point He began first to shew His might: for He went into
- Hell, and when He was there He raised up the great Root out of the deep
- deepness which rightfully was knit to Him in high Heaven. The body was
- in the grave till Easter-morrow, and from that time He lay nevermore.
- For then was rightfully ended the struggling and the writhing, the
- groaning and the moaning. And our foul deadly flesh that God's Son
- took on Him, which was Adam's old kirtle, strait, [worn]-bare, and
- short, was then by our Saviour made fair, new, white and bright and of
- endless cleanness; loose and long[25]; fairer and richer than was then
- the clothing which [before] I saw on the Father: for that clothing was
- blue, but Christ's clothing is [coloured] now of a fair seemly medlour,
- which is so marvellous that I can it not describe: for it is all of
- very worships.
- Now sitteth not the Son on earth in wilderness, but He sitteth in
- His noblest Seat, which He made in Heaven most to His pleasing. Now
- standeth not the Son afore the Father as a Servant afore the Lord
- dreadingly, meanly clad, in part naked; but He standeth afore the
- Father even-right, richly clad in blissful largeness, with a Crown
- upon His head of precious richness. For it was shewed that _we be His
- Crown_: which Crown is the Joy of the Father, the Worship of the Son,
- the Satisfying of the Holy Ghost, and endless marvellous Bliss to all
- that be in Heaven. Now standeth not the Son afore the Father on the
- left side, as a labourer, but He sitteth on His Father's right hand,
- in endless rest and peace.[26] (But it is not meant that the Son
- sitteth on the right hand, side by side, as one man sitteth by another
- in this life,--for there is no such sitting, as to my sight, in the
- Trinity,--but He sitteth on His Father's right hand,--that is to say:
- in the highest nobleness of the Father's joys.) Now is the Spouse,
- God's Son, in peace with His loved Wife, which is the Fair Maiden of
- endless Joy. Now sitteth the Son, Very God and Man, in His City in rest
- and peace: which [City] His Father hath adight to Him of His endless
- purpose; and the Father in the Son; and the Holy Ghost in the Father
- and in the Son.
- [1] _i.e._ a steep hollow place; a ravine.
- [2] _i.e._ injury, harm.
- [3] "entended."
- [4] "aret" = reckoned.
- [5] _i.e._ not of definite purport, indistinct.
- [6] "avisement."
- [7] MS. "within him an _heyward_ long and brode, all full of endless
- hevyns." Cressy and Collins transcribe this word without explanation,
- but give "heavenliness" for "heavens." It seems most likely that "hey"
- has been written as if affixed to "ward" (_i.e. "regard," "deeming,"_
- or _"reward"_), or else to _"reward,"_ meaning, as usual, _regard_
- ("Beholding"). See pp. 108 and 113.
- If "_an heyward_"--"long and brode all full of endless hevyns,"--were
- to be rendered as "an high reward," revealed for the future along
- with, though less clearly than, the divine pity for the pains of the
- present, reference might be made to Revelation ix. pp. 47, 50: "It is
- a joy, a bliss, an endless satisfying to me that ever suffered Passion
- for thee." ... "In this feeling mine understanding was lifted up into
- Heaven: and there I saw three heavens"; and to Rev. x. p. 51: "then
- with a glad Cheer our Lord looked into His Side and beheld, rejoicing.
- With His sweet looking He led forth the understanding of His creature
- by the same wound into His Side within. And then He shewed a fair
- delectable place, and large enough for all mankind that shall be saved
- to rest in peace and in love."
- But "Regard" (scope of true, continuing, divine Sight, Insight,
- All-comprehending sight) seems more likely to be the true rendering.
- "Long and broad" go strangely with the word, but on p. 113 the _length
- and breadth_ of the garments is interpreted immediately after the
- colour of the eyes, and is said to betoken that "He hath in Him, all
- Heavens, and all Joy and Bliss," and indeed these words but fill out
- the idea of the more frequently used "high" to signify the "enclosing"
- of "endless heavens:" that Sphere of "fulness" which is infinite.
- With this passage may be compared one below, on p. 113: "The Merciful
- Beholding of His loving Cheer fulfilled all earth and descended
- down with Adam into hell, ... and thus Mercy and Pity dwelleth with
- mankind unto the time we come up into Heaven." The other, the Inward,
- the _high_ Beholding or Regard it not said to "fill" Heaven, but to
- be "full of" endless Heavens. So elsewhere it is said that in our
- _Sense-soul_, the lower part of human nature, _God dwells_, but that
- our _Substance_, the higher part, _dwells in God_. (The regard of Mercy
- and Pity is with the Sense-soul; the high Regard of Joy and Bliss is
- with the Substance.) P. 132, chap. lv.: "I saw that our Substance is in
- God, and also I saw that in our Sense-soul God is." lvi. p. 135:" The
- worshipful City that our Lord Jesus sitteth in, it is our Sense-part,
- in which He is enclosed; and our Nature-Substance is beclosed in Jesus,
- with the blessed Soul of Christ sitting in rest in the Godhead."
- [8] "lofly cher."
- [9] "I reson sothly we owen."
- [10] See p. 112, the "high reward."
- [11] "which wer disposed to travel."
- [12] "even fornempts" = strait opposite.
- [13] _i.e._ equal (MS. "even like").
- [14] S. de Cressy: "anaved"; MS. "anew."
- [15] _i.e._ equal--see p. 114. "All of the Charity of God," the mutual
- love that also embraces created souls, p. 118.
- [16] "the slade."
- [17] "the slade."
- [18] "mischief."
- [19] "wilfully" = voluntarily, of His own Will as God.
- [20] purpose, intent, thought or speech.
- [21] "langor."
- [22] _i.e._ painful toil. "He sitteth ... in peace and rest. And
- the Godhead ruleth and careth for heaven and earth and all that is"
- (lxvii.).
- [23] "honest."
- [24] "wilfully."
- [25] "wyde and syde" = wide and long.
- [26] But see also xxxix. p. 81, lxxx. p. 194.
- CHAPTER LII
- "We have now matter of mourning: for our sin is cause of Christ's
- pains; and we have, lastingly, matter of joy: for endless love made Him
- to suffer"
- And thus I saw that God rejoiceth that He is our Father, and God
- rejoiceth that He is our Mother, and God rejoiceth that He is Very
- Spouse and our soul is His loved Wife. And Christ rejoiceth that He
- is our Brother, and Jesus rejoiceth that He is our Saviour. These are
- five high joys, as I understand, in which He willeth that we enjoy; Him
- praising, Him thanking, Him loving, Him endlessly blessing.
- All that shall be saved, we have in us, for the time of this life, a
- marvellous mingling[1] both of weal and woe: we have in us our Lord
- Jesus uprisen, we have in us the wretchedness and the mischief of
- Adam's falling, dying. By Christ we are steadfastly kept, and by His
- grace touching us we are raised into sure trust of salvation. And by
- Adam's falling we are so broken, in our feeling, in diverse manners
- by sins and by sundry pains, in which we are made dark, that scarsely
- we can take any comfort. But in our intent[2] we abide in God, and
- faithfully trust to have mercy and grace; and this is His own working
- in us. And of His goodness He openeth the eye of our understanding, by
- which we have sight, sometime more and sometime less, according as God
- giveth ability to receive. And now we are raised into the one, and now
- we are suffered to fall into the other.
- And thus is this medley so marvellous in us that scarsely we know
- of our self or of our even-Christian in what way we stand, for the
- marvellousness of this sundry feeling. But that same Holy Assent,
- _that_ we assent to God when we feel Him, truly setting our will to be
- with Him, with all our heart, and with all our soul, and with all our
- might. And then we hate and despise our evil stirrings and all that
- might be occasion of sin, spiritual and bodily.[3] And yet nevertheless
- when this sweetness is hid, we fall again into blindness, and so into
- woe and tribulation in diverse manners. But then is this our comfort,
- that we _know in our faith_ that by virtue of Christ which is our
- Keeper, we assent never thereto, but we groan there-against, and dure
- on, in pain and woe, praying, unto that time that He sheweth Him again
- to us.
- And thus we stand in this medley all the days of our life. But He
- willeth that we trust that He is lastingly with as. And that in
- three manner.--He is with us in Heaven, very Man, in His own Person,
- us updrawing; and that was shewed in [the Shewing of] the Spiritual
- Thirst. And He is with us in earth, us leading; and that was shewed
- in the Third [Shewing], where I saw God in a Point. And He is with us
- in our soul, endlessly dwelling, us ruling and keeping; and that was
- shewed in the Sixteenth [Shewing], as I shall tell.
- And thus in the Servant was shewed the scathe and blindness of Adam's
- falling; and in the Servant was shewed the wisdom and goodness of
- God's Son. And in the Lord was shewed the ruth and pity of Adam's woe,
- and in the Lord was shewed the high nobility and the endless worship
- that Mankind is come to by the virtue of the Passion and death of His
- dearworthy Son. And therefore mightily He joyeth in his falling for the
- high raising and fulness of bliss that Mankind is come to, overpassing
- that we should have had if he had not fallen.--And thus to see this
- overpassing nobleness was mine understanding led into God in the same
- time that I saw the Servant fall.
- And thus we have, now, matter of mourning: for our sin is cause of
- Christ's pains; and we have, lastingly, matter of joy: for endless love
- made Him to suffer. And therefore the creature that seeth and feeleth
- the working of love by grace, hateth nought but sin: for of all things,
- to my sight, love and hate are [the] hardest and most unmeasureable
- contraries. And notwithstanding all this, I saw and understood in our
- Lord's meaning that we may not in this life keep us from sin as wholly
- in full cleanness as we shall be in Heaven. But we may well by grace
- keep us from the sins which would lead us to endless pains, as Holy
- Church teacheth us; and eschew venial [ones] reasonably up to our
- might. And if we by our blindness and our wretchedness any time fall,
- we should readily rise, knowing the sweet touching of grace, and with
- all our will amend us upon the teaching of Holy Church, according as
- the sin is grievous, and go forthwith to God in love; and neither, on
- the one side, fall over low, inclining to despair, nor, on the other
- side, be over-reckless, as if we made no matter of it[4]; but nakedly
- acknowledge our feebleness, finding that we may not stand a twinkling
- of an eye but by Keeping of grace, and reverently cleave to God, on Him
- only trusting.
- For after one wise is the Beholding by[5] God, and after another wise
- is the Beholding by[6] man. For it belongeth to man meekly to accuse
- himself, and it belongeth to the proper Goodness of our Lord God
- courteously to excuse man. And these be two parts that were shewed in
- the double Manner of Regard with which the Lord beheld the falling of
- His loved Servant. The one was shewed outward, very meekly and mildly,
- with great ruth and pity; and that of endless Love. And right thus
- willeth our Lord that we accuse our self, earnestly and truly seeing
- and knowing our falling and all the harms that come thereof; seeing
- and learning[7] that we can never restore it; and therewith that we
- earnestly and truly see and know His everlasting love that He hath to
- us, and His plenteous mercy. And thus graciously to see and know both
- together is the meek accusing that our Lord asketh of us, and Himself
- worketh it where it is. And this is the lower part of man's life, and
- it was shewed in the [Lord's] _outward_ manner of Regard. In which
- shewing I saw _two_ parts: the one is the rueful falling of man, the
- other is the worshipful Satisfaction[8] that our Lord hath made for man.
- The other manner of Regard was shewed _inward_: and that was more
- highly and all [fully] _one_.[9] For the life and the virtue that we
- have in the lower part is of the higher, and it cometh down to us [from
- out] of the Natural love of the [high] Self, by [the working of] grace.
- Atwix [the life of] the one and [the life of] the other there is right
- nought: for it is all one love. Which one blessed love hath now, in us,
- double working: for in the lower part are pains and passions, mercies
- and forgiveness, and such other that are profitable; but in the higher
- part are none of these, but all one high love and marvellous joy:
- in[10] which joy all pains are highly restored. And in this [time] our
- Lord showed not only our Excusing[11] [from blame, in His beholding of
- our higher part], but the worshipful nobility that He shall bring us
- to [by the working of grace in our lower part], turning all our blame
- [that is therein, from our falling] into endless worship [when we be
- oned to the high Self above].[12]
- [1] "medlour," "medle."
- [2] "menyng."
- [3] "And thus is this medle so mervelous in us that onethys we knowen
- of our selfe or of our evyn Cristen in what way we stonden for the
- marveloushede of this sundry felyng. But that ilke holy assent that we
- assenten to God when we feel hym truly willand to be with him with al
- our herte, with al our soule and with al our myte, and than we haten
- and dispisen our evil sterings and al that myte be occasion of synne
- gostly and bodily."
- [4] "gove no fors" = gave it no force.
- [5] "of."
- [6] "of."
- [7] "witand" = witting.
- [8] "Asseth."
- [9] "and al on"--perhaps for _all is one_.
- [10] "in" = _in, into,_ or _unto_.
- [11] _i.e. Exculpating_--as in Romans ii. 15.
- [12] "Man,--seeing he is not a simple nature--in one aspect of his
- being, which is the better, and that I may speak more openly what I
- ought to speak, his very self, is immortal; but on the other side,
- which is weak and fallen, and which alone is known to those who have
- no faith except in sensible things, he is obnoxious to mortality and
- mutability."--From the _Didascolon_ of Hugo of St Victor, as quoted in
- F. D. Maurice's _Mediæval Philosophy_, p. 147.
- CHAPTER LIII
- "In every soul that shall be saved is a Godly Will that never assented
- to sin, nor ever shall." "Ere that He made us He loved us, and when we
- were made we loved Him"
- And I saw that He willeth that we understand He taketh not harder the
- falling of any creature that shall be saved than He took the falling of
- Adam, which, we know, was endlessly loved and securely kept in the time
- of all his need, and now is blissfully restored in high overpassing
- joy. For our Lord is so good, so gentle, and so courteous, that He may
- never assign default [in those] in whom He shall ever be blessed and
- praised.
- And in this that I have now told was my desire in part answered, and my
- great difficulty[1] some deal eased, by the lovely, gracious Shewing of
- our good Lord. In which Shewing I saw and understood full surely that
- in every soul that shall be saved is a Godly Will that never assented
- to sin, nor ever shall: which Will is so good that it may never will
- evil, but evermore continually it willeth good; and worketh good in the
- sight of God. Therefore our Lord willeth that we know this in the Faith
- and the belief; and especially that we have all this blessed Will whole
- and safe in our Lord Jesus Christ. For that same Kind[2] that Heaven
- shall be filled with behoveth needs, of God's rightfulness, so to have
- been knit and oned to Him, that therein was kept a Substance
- which might never, nor should, be parted from Him; and _that_ through
- His own Good Will in His endless foreseeing purpose.
- But notwithstanding this rightful knitting and this endless oneing, yet
- the redemption and the again-buying of mankind is needful and speedful
- in everything, as it is done for the same intent and to the same end
- that Holy Church in our Faith us teacheth.
- For I saw that God _began_ never to love mankind: for right the same
- that mankind shall be in endless bliss, fulfilling the joy of God as
- anent His works, right so the same, mankind hath been in the foresight
- of God: known and loved from without beginning in his[3] rightful
- intent. By the endless assent of the full accord of all the Trinity,
- the Mid-Person willed to be Ground and Head of this fair Kind: out of
- Whom we be all come, in Whom we be all enclosed, into Whom we shall
- all wend,[4] in Him finding our full Heaven in everlasting joy, by the
- foreseeing purpose of all the blessed Trinity from without beginning.
- For ere that He made us He loved us, and when we were made we loved
- Him. And this is a Love that is _made_, [to our Kindly Substance], [by
- virtue] of the Kindly Substantial _Goodness_ of the Holy Ghost; Mighty,
- in Reason, [by virtue] of the _Might_ of the Father; and Wise, in Mind,
- [by virtue] of the _Wisdom_ of the Son. And thus is Man's Soul made by
- God and in the same point knit to God.
- And thus I understand that man's Soul is made of nought: that is to
- say, it is made, but of nought that is made. And thus:--When God
- should make man's body He took the clay of earth, which is a matter
- mingled and gathered of all bodily things; and thereof He made man's
- body. But to the making of man's Soul He would take right nought, but
- made it. And thus is the Nature-made rightfully oned to the Maker,
- which is Substantial Nature not-made: that is, God. And therefore it is
- that there may nor shall be right nought atwix God and man's Soul.
- And in this endless Love man's Soul is kept whole, as the matter of the
- Revelations signifieth and sheweth: in which endless Love we be led
- and kept of God and never shall be lost. For He willeth we[5] be aware
- that our Soul is a life, which life of His Goodness and His Grace shall
- last in Heaven without end, Him loving, Him thanking, Him praising. And
- right the same that we shall be without end, the same we were treasured
- in God and hid, known and loved from without beginning.
- Wherefore He would have us understand that the noblest thing that ever
- He made is mankind: and the fullest Substance and the highest Virtue is
- the blessed Soul of Christ. And furthermore He would have us understand
- that His[6] dear worthy Soul [of Manhood] was preciously knit to Him in
- the making [by Him of Manhood's Substantial Nature] which knot is so
- subtle and so mighty that (it)[7]--[man's soul]--is oned into God: in
- which oneing it is made endlessly holy. Furthermore He would have us
- know that all the souls that shall be saved in Heaven without end, are
- knit and oned in this oneing and made holy in this holiness.
- [1] "awer" = awe, travail of perplexity, dilemma--see l. note 3.
- [2] Man's nature.
- [3] Or (it may be): "In His Rightful Intent ... the Mid-Person
- willed...."
- [4] "wynden."
- [5] "wetyn" = wit.
- [6] S. de Cressy has "this "; the word in the MS. is more like "his."
- [7] The pronoun "it" given by S. de Cressy is omitted in the MS. The
- meaning is, perhaps, that the Manhood-Substance, or Soul of Christ,
- was in its making, by the Second Person in the Trinity, so united to
- Himself that Man's Substance and each man's soul (in salvation), being
- one with it, are one with God the Son. See li. p. 117.
- CHAPTER LIV
- "Faith is nought else but a right understanding, with true belief and
- sure trust, of our Being: that we are in God, and God is in us: Whom we
- see not"
- And because of this great, endless love that God hath to all Mankind,
- He maketh no disparting in love between the blessed Soul of Christ and
- the least soul that shall be saved. For it is full easy to believe and
- to trust that the dwelling of the blessed Soul of Christ is full high
- in the glorious Godhead, and verily, as I understand in our Lord's
- signifying, where the blessed Soul of Christ is, there is the Substance
- of all the souls that shall be saved by Christ.
- Highly ought we to rejoice that God dwelleth in our soul, and much more
- highly ought we to rejoice that our soul dwelleth in God. Our soul is
- _made_ to be God's dwelling-place; and the dwelling-place of the soul
- is God, Which is _unmade_. And high understanding it is, inwardly to
- see and know that God, which is our Maker, dwelleth in our soul; and an
- higher understanding it is, inwardly to see and to know that our soul,
- that is made, dwelleth in God's Substance: of which Substance, God, we
- are that we are.
- And I saw no difference between God and our Substance: but as it were
- all God; and yet mine understanding took that our Substance is in God:
- that is to say, that God is God, and our Substance is a creature in
- God. For the Almighty Truth of the Trinity is our Father: for He made
- us and keepeth us in Him; and the deep Wisdom of the Trinity is our
- Mother, in Whom we are all enclosed; the high Goodness of the Trinity
- is our Lord, and in Him we are enclosed, and He in us. We are enclosed
- in the Father, and we are enclosed in the Son, and we are enclosed
- in the Holy Ghost. And the Father is enclosed in us, and the Son is
- enclosed in us, and the Holy Ghost is enclosed in us: Almightiness,
- All-Wisdom, All-Goodness: one God, one Lord.
- And our faith is a Virtue that cometh of our Nature-Substance into our
- Sense-soul by the Holy Ghost; in which all our virtues come to us: for
- without that, no man may receive virtue. For it is nought else but a
- right understanding, with true belief, and sure trust, of our Being:
- that we are in God, and God in us, Whom we see not. And this virtue,
- with all other that God hath ordained to us coming therein, worketh
- in us great things. For Christ's merciful working is in us, and we
- graciously accord to Him through the gifts and the virtues of the Holy
- Ghost. This working maketh that we are Christ's children, and Christian
- in living.
- CHAPTER LV
- "Christ is our Way"--"Mankind shall be restored from double death"
- And thus Christ is our Way, us surely leading in His laws, and Christ
- in His body mightily beareth us up into heaven. For I saw that
- Christ, us all having in Him that shall be saved by Him, worshipfully
- presenteth His Father in heaven with us; which present full thankfully
- His Father receiveth, and courteously giveth it to His Son, Jesus
- Christ: which gift and working is joy to the Father, and bliss to the
- Son, and pleasing to the Holy Ghost. And of all things that belong to
- us [to do], it is most pleasing to our Lord that we enjoy in this joy
- which is in the blessed Trinity [in virtue] of our salvation. (And this
- was seen in the Ninth Shewing, where it speaketh more of this matter.)
- And notwithstanding all our feeling of woe or weal, God willeth that
- we should understand and hold[1] by faith that we are more verily in
- heaven than in earth.
- Our Faith cometh of the natural Love of our soul, and of the clear
- light of our Reason, and of the steadfast Mind which we have from[2]
- God in our first making. And what time that our soul is inspired into
- our body, in which we are made sensual, so soon mercy and grace begin
- to work, having of us care and keeping with pity and love: in which
- working the Holy Ghost formeth, in our Faith, _Hope_ that we shall come
- again up above to our Substance, into the Virtue of Christ, increased
- and fulfilled through the Holy Ghost. Thus I understood that the
- sense-soul is grounded in Nature, in Mercy, and in Grace: which Ground
- enableth us to receive gifts that lead us to endless life.
- For I saw full assuredly that our Substance is in God, and also I saw
- that in our sense-soul[3] God is: for in the self-[same] point that
- our Soul is made sensual, in the self-[same] point is the City of God
- ordained to Him from without beginning; into which seat He cometh,
- and never shall remove [from] it. For God is never out of the soul:
- in which He dwelleth blissfully without end. And this was seen in the
- Sixteenth Shewing where it saith: _The place that Jesus taketh in our
- soul, He shall never remove [from] it_. And all the gifts that God may
- give to creatures, He hath given to His Son Jesus for us: which gifts
- He, dwelling in us, hath enclosed in Him unto the time that we be waxen
- and grown,--our soul with our body and our body with our soul, either
- of them taking help of other,--till we be brought up unto stature, as
- nature worketh. And then, in the ground of nature, with working of
- mercy, the Holy Ghost graciously inspireth into us gifts leading to
- endless life.
- And thus was my understanding led of God to see in Him and to
- understand, to perceive and to know, that our soul is _made-trinity_,
- like to the unmade blissful Trinity,[4] known and loved from without
- beginning, and in the making oned to the Maker, as it is aforesaid.
- This sight was full sweet and marvellous to behold, peaceable, restful,
- sure, and delectable.
- And because of the worshipful oneing that was thus made by God
- betwixt the soul and body, it behoveth needs to be that mankind shall
- be restored from double death: which restoring might never be until
- the time that the Second Person in the Trinity had taken the lower[5]
- part of man's nature; to Whom the highest[6] [part] was oned in the
- First-making. And these two parts were in Christ, the higher and the
- lower: which is but one Soul; the higher part was one in peace with
- God, in full joy and bliss; the lower part, which is sense-nature,[7]
- suffered for the salvation of mankind.
- And these two parts [in Christ] were seen and felt in the Eighth
- Shewing, in which my body was fulfilled with feeling and mind of
- Christ's Passion and His death, and furthermore with this was a subtile
- feeling and privy inward sight of the High Part which I was shewed in
- the same time when I could not, [even] for the friendly[8] proffer
- [made to me], look up into Heaven: and that was because of that mighty
- beholding [that I had] of the Inward Life. Which Inward Life is that
- High Substance, that precious Soul, [of Christ], which is endlessly
- rejoicing in the Godhead.
- [1] "feythyn."
- [2] "of."
- [3] "sensualite."
- [4] Wisdom, Truth, Love or Goodness, p. 93.
- [5] the Sense-soul.
- [6] the Substance.
- [7] "sensualite."
- [8] "wher I myte not for the mene profir lokyn up on to hevyn." "mene"
- = medium, is perhaps a sub. in the gen. = intervenor's, intermediary's.
- See xix. p. 42 and xxxv. p. 70, S. de Cressy has: "Where I might not
- for the mean profer look up"; Collins: "for the meanwhile."
- CHAPTER LVI
- "God is nearer to us than our own soul" "We can never come to full
- knowing of God till we know first clearly our own Soul"
- And thus I saw full surely that it is readier to us to come to
- the knowing of God than to know our own Soul. For our Soul is so
- deep-grounded in God, and so endlessly treasured, that we may not come
- to the knowing thereof till we have first knowing of God, which is the
- Maker, to whom it is oned. But, notwithstanding, I saw that we have,
- for fulness, to desire wisely and truly to know our own Soul: whereby
- we are learned to seek it where it is, and that is, in God. And thus by
- gracious leading of the Holy Ghost, we should know them both in one:
- whether we be stirred to know God or our Soul, both [these stirrings]
- are good and true.
- God is nearer to us than our own Soul: for He is [the] Ground in whom
- our Soul standeth, and He is [the] Mean that keepeth the Substance
- and the Sense-nature together so that they shall never dispart. For
- our soul sitteth in God in very rest, and our soul standeth in God in
- very strength, and our Soul is kindly rooted in God in endless love:
- and therefore if we will have knowledge of our Soul, and communing and
- dalliance therewith, it behoveth to seek unto our Lord God in whom it
- is enclosed. (And of this enclosement I saw and understood more in the
- Sixteenth Shewing, as I shall tell.)
- And as anent our Substance and our Sense-part, both together may
- rightly be called our Soul:[1] and that is because of the oneing that
- they have in God. The worshipful City that our Lord Jesus sitteth in is
- our Sense-soul, in which He is enclosed: and our Kindly Substance is
- enclosed in Jesus with the blessed Soul of Christ sitting in rest in
- the Godhead.
- And I saw full surely that it behoveth needs to be that we should be
- in longing and in penance unto the time that we be led so deep into
- God that we verily and truly know our own Soul. And truly I saw that
- into this high deepness our good Lord Himself leadeth us in the same
- love that He made us, and in the same love that He bought us by Mercy
- and Grace through virtue of His blessed Passion. And notwithstanding
- all this, we may never come to full knowing of God till we know first
- clearly our own Soul. For until the time that our Soul is in its full
- powers[2] we cannot be all fully holy: and that is [until the time]
- that our Sense-soul by the virtue of Christ's Passion be brought up to
- the Substance, with all the profits of our tribulation that our Lord
- shall make us to get by Mercy and Grace.
- I had, in part, [experience of the] Touching [of God in the soul],
- and it is grounded in Nature. That is to say, our Reason is grounded
- in God, which is Substantial Naturehood.[3] [Out] of this Substantial
- Naturehood Mercy and Grace springeth and spreadeth into us, working all
- things in fulfilling of our joy: these are our Ground in which we have
- our Increase and our Fulfilling.
- These be three properties in one Goodness: and where one worketh, all
- work in the things which be _now_ belonging to us. God willeth that we
- understand [this], desiring with all our heart to have knowing of them
- more and more unto the time that we be fulfilled: for fully to know
- them is nought else but endless joy and bliss that we shall have in
- Heaven, which God willeth should be begun here in knowing of His love.
- For only by our Reason we may not profit, but if we have evenly
- therewith Mind and Love: nor only in our Nature-Ground that we have
- in God we may not be saved but if we have, coming of the same Ground,
- Mercy and Grace. For of these three working all together we receive
- all our Goodness. Of the which the first [gifts] are goods of Nature:
- for in our First making God gave us as full goods as we might receive
- in our spirit alone,[4]--and also greater goods; but His foreseeing
- purpose in His endless wisdom willed that we should be double.
- [1] "& anempts our substance and sensualite it may rytely be clepid our
- soule."
- [2] "the full myts."
- [3] "I had in partie touching and it is grounded in kynd: that is to
- sey, our reson is groundid in God, which is substantial kyndhede."
- [4] "ffor in our first makyng God gaf us as ful goods and also greter
- godes as we myte receivin only in our spirite." In the MS. the word
- "spirit" is used only here, where it means "the Substance."
- CHAPTER LVII
- "In Christ our two natures are united"
- And anent our Substance He made us noble, and so rich that evermore we
- work His will and His worship. (Where I say "we," it meaneth Man that
- shall be saved.) For soothly I saw that we are that which He loveth,
- and do that which Him pleaseth, lastingly without any stinting: and
- [that by virtue] of the great riches and of the high noble virtues by
- measure come to our soul what time it is knit to our body: in which
- knitting we are made Sensual.
- And thus in our Substance we are full, and in our Sense-soul we fail:
- which failing God will restore and fulfil by working of Mercy and Grace
- plenteously flowing into us out of His own Nature-Goodness.[1] And thus
- His Nature-Goodness maketh that Mercy and Grace work in us, and the
- Nature-goodness that we have of Him enableth us to receive the working
- of Mercy and Grace.
- I saw that our nature is in God whole: in which [whole nature of
- Manhood] He maketh diversities flowing out of Him to work His will:
- whom Nature keepeth, and Mercy and Grace restoreth and fulfilleth. And
- of these none shall perish: for our nature that is the higher part is
- knit to God, in the making; and God is knit to our nature that is the
- lower part, in our flesh-taking: and thus in Christ our two natures are
- oned. For the Trinity is comprehended in Christ, in whom our higher
- part is grounded and rooted; and our lower part the Second Person hath
- taken: which nature first to Him was made-ready.[2] For I saw full
- surely that all the works that God hath done, or ever shall, were fully
- known to Him and aforeseen from without beginning. And for Love He made
- Mankind, and for the same Love would be Man.
- The next[3] Good that we receive is our Faith, in which our
- profiting beginneth. And it cometh [out] of the high riches of our
- nature-Substance into our Sensual soul, and it is grounded in us
- through the Nature-Goodness of God, by the working of Mercy and Grace.
- And thereof come all other goods by which we are led and saved. For the
- Commandments of God come therein: in which we ought to have two manners
- of understanding: [the one is that we ought to understand and know]
- which are His biddings, to love and to keep them; the other is that we
- ought to know His forbiddings, to hate and to refuse them. For in these
- two is all our working comprehended. Also in our faith come the Seven
- Sacraments, each following other in order as God hath ordained them to
- us: and all manner of virtues.
- For the same virtues that we have received of our Substance, given to
- us in Nature by the Goodness of God,--the same virtues by the working
- of Mercy are given to us in Grace through the Holy Ghost, _renewed_:
- which virtues and gifts are treasured to us in Jesus Christ. For in
- that same[4] time that God knitted Himself to our body in the Virgin's
- womb, He took our Sensual soul:[5] in which taking He, us all having
- enclosed in Him, oned it to our Substance: in which oneing He was
- perfect Man. For Christ having knit in Him each[6] man that shall be
- saved, is perfect Man. Thus our Lady is our Mother in whom we are all
- enclosed and of her born,[7] in Christ: (for she that is Mother of our
- Saviour is Mother of all that shall be saved in our Saviour;) and our
- Saviour is our Very Mother in whom we be endlessly borne,[8] and never
- shall come out of Him.
- Plenteously and fully and sweetly was this shewed, and it is spoken of
- in the First, where it saith: _We are all in Him enclosed and He is
- enclosed in us_. And that [enclosing of Him in us] is spoken of in the
- Sixteenth Shewing, where it saith: _He sitteth in our soul_.
- For it is His good-pleasure to reign in our Understanding blissfully,
- and sit in our Soul restfully, and to dwell in our Soul endlessly,
- us all working into Him: in which working He willeth that we be His
- helpers, giving to Him all our attending, learning His lores, keeping
- His laws, desiring that all be done that He doeth; truly trusting in
- Him.
- For soothly I saw that our Substance is in God.[9]
- [1] "kynde godhede."
- [2] "adyte."
- [3] or the _first_.
- [4] "ilk" = "same."
- [5] Here, as above, the MS. term for the "_Sensual soul_" is the
- "_Sensualite_."
- [6] "ilk" = "each."
- [7] The MS. word is in both cases "borne," which may mean either _born_
- or _borne_. S. de Cressy gives "born" both for the first word and the
- second. See lx. "He sustaineth us within Himself in love," etc.; and
- lxiii. "In the taking of our nature He quickened us," etc.
- [8] See preceding note.
- [9] From _The Scale [or Ladder] of Perfection,_ by Walter Hilton
- (Fourteenth century), edition of 1659, Part III. ch. ii.:--
- "The soule of a man is a life consisting of three powers, _Memory,
- Understanding,_ and _Will,_ after the image and likeness of the blessed
- Trinity.... Whereby you may see, that man's soule (which may be called
- a created Trinity) was in its natural state replenished in its three
- powers, with the remembrance, sight, and love of the most blessed
- uncreated Trinity, which is God.... But when Adam sinned, choosing
- love and delight in himselfe, and in the creatures, he lost all his
- excellency and dignity, and thou also in him."
- Ch. III. Sec. i. "And though we should prove not to be able to recover
- it fully here in this life, yet should we desire and endeavour to
- recover the image and likeness of the dignity we had, so that our soul
- might be reformed as it were in a shadow by grace to the image of the
- Trinity which we had by nature, and hereafter shall have fully in
- bliss...." Sec. ii. "Seeke then that which thou hast lost, that thou
- mayest finde it; for well I wote, whosoever once hath an inward sight,
- but a little of that dignity and that spirituall fairness which a soule
- hath by creation, and shall have again by grace, he will loath in his
- heart all the blisse, the liking, and the fairnesse of this world....
- Nevertheless as thou hast not as yet seen what it is fully, for thy
- spiritual eye is not yet opened, I shall tell thee one word for all, in
- the which thou shalt seeke, desire, and finde it; for in that one word
- is all that thou hast lost. This word is Jesus.... If thou feelest in
- thy heart a great desire to Jesus ... then seekest thou well thy Lord
- Jesus. And when thou feelest this desire to God, or to Jesus (for it
- is all one) holpen and comforted by a ghostly might, insomuch that it
- is turned into love, affection, and spiritual fervour and sweetnesse,
- into light and knowing of truth, so that for the time the point of thy
- thought is set upon no other created thing, nor feeleth any stirring
- of vain-glory, nor of selfe-love, nor any other evill affection (for
- they cannot appear at that time) but this thy desire is onely enclosed,
- rested, softened, suppled, and annoynted in Jesus, then hast thou found
- somewhat of Jesus; I mean not him as he is, but a shadow of him; for
- the better that thou findest him, the more shalt thou desire him. Then
- observe by what manner of Prayer or Meditation or exercise of Devotion
- thou findest greatest and purest desire stirred up in thee to him, and
- most feeling of him, by that kind of prayer, exercise, or worke seekest
- thou him best, and shalt best finde him....
- "See then the mercy and courtesie of Jesus. Thou hast lost him, but
- where? soothly in thy house, that is to say, in thy soul, that if
- thou hadst lost all thy reason of thy soule, by its first sinne, thou
- shouldst never have found him again; but he left thee thy reason, and
- so he is still in thy soule, and never is quite lost out of it.
- "Nevertheless, thou art never the nearer him, till thou hast found
- him. He is in thee, though he be lost from thee; but thou art not in
- him, till thou hast found him. This is his mercy also, that he would
- suffer himself to be lost onely where he may be found, so that thou
- needest not run to _Rome_, nor to _Jerusalem_ to seeke him there, but
- turne thy thoughts into thy owne soule, where he is hid, as the Prophet
- saith; _Truly thou art the hidden God_, hid in thy soule, and seek him
- there. Thus saith he himselfe in the Gospel; _The kingdome of heaven is
- likened to a treasure hid in the field, the which when a man findeth,
- for joy thereof, he goeth and selleth all that he hath, and buyeth that
- field_. Jesus is a treasure hid in the soule....
- "As long as Jesus findeth not his image reformed in thee, he is
- strange, and the farther from thee: therefore frame and shape thyself
- to be arrayed in his likenesse, that is in humility and charity, which
- are his liveries, and then will he know thee, and familiarly come
- to thee, and acquaint thee with his secrets. Thus saith he to his
- Disciples; _Who so loveth me, he shall be loved of my Father, and I
- will manifest my selfe unto him_. There is not any vertue nor any good
- work that can make thee like to our Lord, without Humility and Charity,
- for these two above all other are most acceptable ('most leyf') to
- him, which appeareth plainly in the Gospel, where our Lord speaketh of
- humility thus; _Learn of me, for I am meeke and humble in heart_. He
- saith not, learn of me to go barefoot, or to go into the desart, and
- there to fast forty dayes, nor yet to choose to your selves Disciples
- (as I did) but learne of me meeknesse, for I am meek and lowly in
- heart. Also of charity he saith thus; _This is my Commandment, that ye
- love one another as I loved you, for by that shall men know you for
- my Disciples_. Not that you worke miracles, or cast out Devills, or
- preach, or teach, but that each one of you love one another in charity.
- If therefore thou wilt be like him, have humility and charity. Now thou
- knowest what charity is, _viz._ To love thy neighbour as thy selfe."
- Chap. IV. Sec. 1.... "Now I shall tell thee (according to my feeble
- ability) how thou mayest enter into thy selfe to see the ground of sin,
- and destroy it as much as thou canst, and so recover a part of thy
- souls dignity.... Draw in thy thoughts ... and set thy intent and full
- purpose, as if thou wouldst not seek nor find any thing but onely the
- grace and spiritual presence of Jesus."
- "This will be painful; for vaine thoughts will presse into thy heart
- very thick, to draw thy minde down to them. And in doing thus, thou
- shalt find somewhat, but not Jesus whom thou seekest, but onely a naked
- remembrance of his name. But what then shalt thou finde? Surely this;
- A darke and ill-favoured image of thy owne soule, which hath neither
- light of knowledge nor feeling of love of God.... This is not the image
- of Jesus, but the image of sin, which St Paul calleth a _body of sinne
- and of death_.... Peradventure now thou beginnest to thinke with thy
- selfe what this image is like, and that thou shouldst not study much
- upon it, I will tell thee. It is like no bodily thing; What is it then
- saist thou? Verily it is _nought_, or no reall thing, as thou shalt
- finde, if thou try by doing as I have spoken; that is, draw in thy
- thoughts into thy selfe from all bodily things, and then shalt thou
- find right _nought_ wherein thy soule may rest.
- "This _nothing_ is nought else but darknesse of conscience, and a
- lacking of the love of God and of light; as sin is nought but a want
- of good, if it were so that the ground of sin was much abated and
- dryed up in thee, and thy soule was reformed right as the image of
- Jesus; then if thou didst draw into thy selfe thy heart, thou shouldst
- not find this _Nought_, but thou shouldst find Jesus; not only the
- naked remembrance of this name, but Jesus Christ in thy soule readily
- teaching thee, thou shouldst there find light of understanding, and
- no darknesse of ignorance, a love and liking of him; and no pain of
- bitternesse, heavinesse, or tediousenesse of him....
- "And here also thou must beware that thou take Jesus Christ into thy
- thoughts against this darknesse in thy mind, by busie prayer and
- fervent desire to God, not setting the point of thy thoughts on that
- foresaid _Nought_, but on Jesus Christ whom thou desirest. Think
- stifly on his passion, and on his Humility, and through his might thou
- shalt arise. Do as if thou wouldst beate downe this darke image, and
- go through-stitch with it. Thou shalt hate ('agryse') and loath this
- darknesse and this _Nought_, just as the Devill, and thou shalt despise
- and all to break it ('brest it').
- "For within this Nought is Jesus hid in his joy, whom thou shalt not
- finde with all thy seeking, unlesse thou passe this darknesse of
- conscience.
- "This is the ghostly travel I spake of, and the cause of all this
- writing is to stir thee thereto, if thou have grace. This darknesse
- of conscience, and this _Nought_ is the image of the first _Adam_: St
- Paul knew it well, for he said thus of it; As we have before borne the
- _image of the earthly man_, that is the first _Adam, right so that we
- might now beare the image of the heavenly man_, which is Jesus, the
- second _Adam_. St _Paul_ bare this image oft full heavily, for it was
- so cumbersome to him, that he cryed out of it, saying thus; _O who
- shall deliver me from this body and this image of death_. And then he
- comforted himselfe and others also thus: _The grace_ of God through
- Jesus Christ."
- CHAPTER LVIII
- "All our life is in three: 'Nature, Mercy, Grace.' The high Might of
- the Trinity is our Father, and the deep Wisdom of the Trinity is our
- Mother, and the great Love of the Trinity is our Lord"
- God, the blessed Trinity, which is everlasting Being, right as He is
- endless from without beginning, right so it was in His purpose endless,
- to make Mankind. Which fair Kind first was prepared[1] to His own
- Son, the Second Person. And when He would, by full accord of all the
- Trinity, He made us all at once; and in our making He knit us and oned
- us to Himself: by which oneing we are kept as clear and as noble as
- we were made. By the virtue of the same precious oneing, we love our
- Maker and seek Him, praise Him and thank Him, and endlessly enjoy Him.
- And this is the work which is wrought continually in every soul that
- shall be saved: which is the Godly Will aforesaid. And thus in our
- making, God, Almighty, is our Nature's Father; and God, All-Wisdom, is
- our Nature's Mother; with the Love and the Goodness of the Holy Ghost:
- which is all one God, one Lord. And in the knitting and the oneing He
- is our Very, True Spouse, and we His loved Wife, His Fair Maiden: with
- which Wife He is never displeased. For He saith: I love thee and thou
- lovest me, and our love shall never be disparted in two.
- I beheld the working of all the blessed Trinity: in which beholding
- I saw and understood these three properties: the property of the
- Fatherhood, the property of the Motherhood, and the property of the
- Lordhood, in one God. In our Father Almighty we have our keeping and
- our bliss as anent our natural Substance, which is to us by our making,
- without beginning. And in the Second Person in skill[2] and wisdom
- we have our keeping as anent our Sense-soul: our restoring and our
- saving; for He is our Mother, Brother, and Saviour. And in our good
- Lord, the Holy Ghost, we have our rewarding and our meed-giving for our
- living and our travail, and endless overpassing of all that we desire,
- in His marvellous courtesy, of His high plenteous grace.
- For all our life is in _three_: in the first we have our Being, in the
- second we have our Increasing, and in the third we have our Fulfilling:
- the first is Nature, the second is Mercy, and the third is Grace.
- For the first, I understood that the high Might of the Trinity is our
- Father, and the deep Wisdom of the Trinity is our Mother, and the great
- Love of the Trinity is our Lord: and all this have we in Nature and in
- the making of our Substance.[3]
- And furthermore I saw that the Second Person, which is our Mother as
- anent the Substance, that same dearworthy Person is become our Mother
- as anent the Sense-soul. For we are double by God's making: that is
- to say, Substantial and Sensual. Our Substance is the higher part,
- which we have in our Father, God Almighty; and the Second Person of
- the Trinity is our Mother in Nature, in making of our Substance: in
- whom we are grounded and rooted. And He is our Mother in Mercy, in
- taking of our Sense-part. And thus our Mother is to us in diverse
- manners working: in whom our parts are kept undisparted. For in our
- Mother Christ we profit and increase, and in Mercy He reformeth us
- and restoreth, and, by the virtue of His Passion and His Death and
- Uprising, oneth us to our Substance. Thus worketh our Mother in Mercy
- to all His children which are to Him yielding[4] and obedient.
- And Grace worketh with Mercy, and specially in two properties, as it
- was shewed: which working belongeth to the Third Person, the Holy
- Ghost. He worketh _rewarding_ and _giving_. Rewarding is a large
- giving-of-truth that the Lord doeth to him that hath travailed;
- and giving is a courteous working which He doeth freely of Grace,
- fulfilling and overpassing all that is deserved of creatures.
- Thus in our Father, God Almighty, we have our being; and in our Mother
- of Mercy we have our reforming and restoring: in whom our Parts are
- oned and all made perfect Man; and by [reward]-yielding and giving in
- Grace of the Holy Ghost, we are fulfilled.
- And our Substance is [in] our Father, God Almighty, and our Substance
- is [in][5] our Mother, God, All-wisdom; and our Substance is in our
- Lord the Holy Ghost, God All-goodness. For our Substance is whole in
- each Person of the Trinity, which is one God. And our Sense-soul is
- only in the Second Person Christ Jesus; in whom is the Father and the
- Holy Ghost: and in Him and by Him we are mightily taken out of Hell,
- and out of the wretchedness in Earth worshipfully brought up into
- Heaven and blissfully oned to our Substance: increased in riches and in
- nobleness by all the virtues of Christ, and by the grace and working of
- the Holy Ghost.
- [1] MS. "adyte to" = ordained to, made ready for.
- [2] MS. "Witt."
- [3] "in our substantiall makyng."
- [4] "buxum."
- [5] S. de Cressy gives the "in" twice missed in the Brit. Mus. MS.
- CHAPTER LIX
- "Jesus Christ that doeth Good against evil is our Very Mother: we have
- our Being of Him where the Ground of Motherhood beginneth,--with all
- the sweet Keeping by Love, that endlessly followeth."
- And all this bliss we have by Mercy and Grace: which manner of bliss we
- might never have had nor known but if that property of Goodness which
- is God had been contraried: whereby we have this bliss. For wickedness
- hath been suffered to rise contrary to the Goodness, and the Goodness
- of Mercy and Grace contraried against the wickedness and turned all to
- goodness and to worship, to all these that shall be saved. For it is
- the property in God which doeth good against evil. Thus Jesus Christ
- that doeth good against evil is our Very Mother: we have our Being of
- Him,--where the Ground of Motherhood beginneth,--with all the sweet
- Keeping of Love that endlessly followeth. As verily as God is our
- Father, so verily God is our Mother; and that shewed He in all, and
- especially in these sweet words where He saith: _I it am_.[1] That is
- to say, _I it am, the Might and the Goodness of the Fatherhood; I it
- am, the Wisdom of the Motherhood; I it am, the Light and the Grace that
- is all blessed Love: I it am, the Trinity, I it am, the Unity: I am the
- sovereign Goodness of all manner of things. I am that maketh thee to
- love: I am that maketh thee to long: I it am, the endless fulfilling of
- all true desires._
- For there the soul is highest, noblest, and worthiest, where it is
- lowest, meekest, and mildest: and [out] of this _Substantial Ground_ we
- have all our virtues in our Sense-part by gift of Nature, by helping
- and speeding of Mercy and Grace: without the which we may not profit.
- Our high Father, God Almighty, which is Being, He knew and loved us
- from afore any time: of which knowing, in His marvellous deep charity
- and the foreseeing counsel of all the blessed Trinity, He willed that
- the Second Person should become our Mother. Our Father [willeth], our
- Mother worketh, our good Lord the Holy Ghost confirmeth: and therefore
- it belongeth to us to love our God in whom we have our being: Him
- reverently thanking and praising for[2] our making, mightily praying to
- our Mother for[3] mercy and pity, and to our Lord the Holy Ghost for[4]
- help and grace.
- For in these three is all our life: Nature, Mercy, Grace: whereof we
- have meekness and mildness; patience and pity; and hating of sin and
- of wickedness,--for it belongeth properly to virtue to hate sin and
- wickedness. And thus is Jesus our Very Mother in Nature [by virtue] of
- our first making; and He is our Very Mother in Grace, by taking our
- nature made. All the fair working, and all the sweet natural office of
- dearworthy Motherhood is impropriated[5] to the Second Person: for in
- Him we have this Godly Will whole and safe without end, both in Nature
- and in Grace, of His own proper Goodness. I understood three manners of
- beholding of Motherhood in God: the first is grounded in our Nature's
- _making_; the second is _taking_ of our nature,--and there beginneth
- the Motherhood of Grace; the third is Motherhood of _working_,--and
- therein is a forthspreading by the same Grace, of length and breadth
- and height and of deepness without end. And all is one Love.
- [1] it is I.
- [2] MS. "of."
- [3] MS. "of."
- [4] MS. "of."
- [5] Or "appropriated to"; MS. "impropried" = made to be the property
- of; assigned and consigned to.
- CHAPTER LX
- "The Kind, loving, Mother"
- But now behoveth to say a little more of this forthspreading, as I
- understand in the meaning of our Lord: how that we be brought again by
- the Motherhood of Mercy and Grace into our Nature's place, where that
- we were made by the Motherhood of Nature-Love: which kindly-love, it
- never leaveth us.
- Our Kind Mother, our Gracious Mother,[1] for that He would all wholly
- become our Mother in all things, He took the Ground of His Works full
- low and full mildly in the Maiden's womb. (And that He shewed in the
- First [Shewing] where He brought that meek Maid afore the eye of mine
- understanding in the simple stature as she was when she conceived.)
- That is to say: our high God is sovereign Wisdom of all: in this low
- place He arrayed and dight Him full ready in our poor flesh, Himself to
- do the service and the office of Motherhood in all things.
- The Mother's service is nearest, readiest, and surest: [nearest, for
- it is most of nature; readiest, for it is most of love; and surest][2]
- for it is most of truth. This office none might, nor could, nor ever
- should do to the full, but He alone. We know that all our mothers'
- bearing is [bearing of] us to pain and to dying: and what is this but
- that our Very Mother, Jesus, He--All-Love--beareth us to joy and to
- endless living?--blessed may He be! Thus He sustaineth[3] us within
- Himself in love; and travailed, unto the full time that He would suffer
- the sharpest throes and the most grievous pains that ever were or ever
- shall be; and died at the last. And when He had finished, and so borne
- us to bliss, yet might not all this make full content to His marvellous
- love; and that sheweth He in these high overpassing words of love: _If
- I might suffer more, I would suffer more_.
- He might no more die, but He would not stint of working: wherefore then
- it behoveth Him to feed us; for the dearworthy love of Motherhood hath
- made Him debtor to us. The mother may give her child suck of her milk,
- but our precious Mother, Jesus, He may feed us with Himself, and doeth
- it, full courteously and full tenderly, with the Blessed Sacrament
- that is precious food of my life; and with all the sweet Sacraments He
- sustaineth us full mercifully and graciously. And so meant He in this
- blessed word where that He said: _It is I[4] that Holy Church preacheth
- thee and teacheth thee._ That is to say: _All the health and life of
- Sacraments, all the virtue and grace of my Word, all the Goodness that
- is ordained in Holy Church for thee, it is I_. The Mother may lay the
- child tenderly to her breast, but our tender Mother, Jesus, He may
- homely lead us into His blessed breast, by His sweet open side, and
- shew therein part of the Godhead and the joys of Heaven, with spiritual
- sureness of endless bliss. And that shewed He in the Tenth [Shewing],
- giving the same understanding in this sweet word where He saith: _Lo!
- how I loved thee_; looking unto [the Wound in] His side, rejoicing.
- This fair lovely word _Mother_, it is so sweet and so close in Nature
- of itself[5] that it may not verily be said of none but of _Him_;
- and to her that is very Mother of Him and of all. To the property of
- Motherhood belongeth natural love, wisdom, and knowing; and it is
- good: for though it be so that our bodily forthbringing be but little,
- low, and simple in regard of our spiritual forthbringing, yet it is He
- that doeth it in the creatures by whom that it is done. The Kindly,[6]
- loving Mother that witteth and knoweth the need of her child, she
- keepeth it full tenderly, as the nature[7] and condition of Motherhood
- will. And as it waxeth in age, she changeth her working, but not her
- love. And when it is waxen of more age, she suffereth that it be
- beaten[8] in breaking down of vices, to make the child receive virtues
- and graces. This working, with all that be fair and good, our Lord
- doeth it in them by whom it is done: thus He is our Mother in Nature by
- the working of Grace in the lower part for love of the higher part. And
- He willeth that we know this: for He will have all our love fastened
- to Him. And in this I saw that all our duty that we owe, by God's
- bidding, to Fatherhood and Motherhood, for [reason of] God's Fatherhood
- and Motherhood is fulfilled in true loving of God; which blessed love
- Christ worketh in us. And this was shewed in all [the Revelations] and
- especially in the high plenteous words where He saith: _It is I that
- thou lovest_.
- [1] Our Mother by Nature, our Mother In Grace.
- [2] These clauses, probably omitted by mistake, are in S. de Cressy's
- version.
- [3] S. de Cressy has "sustained." See lvii. p. 139.
- [4] "I it am."
- [5] "so kynd of the self."
- [6] "kynde."
- [7] "kind."
- [8] "bristinid."
- CHAPTER LXI
- "By the assay of this falling we shall have an high marvellous knowing
- of Love in God, without end. For strong and marvellous is that love
- which may not, nor will not, be broken for trespass"
- And in our spiritual forthbringing He useth more tenderness of keeping,
- without any likeness: by as much as our soul is of more price in His
- sight. He kindleth our understanding, He directeth our ways, He easeth
- our conscience, He comforteth our soul, He lighteneth our heart, and
- giveth us, in part, knowing and believing in His blissful Godhead,
- with gracious mind in His sweet Manhood and His blessed Passion, with
- reverent marvelling in His high, overpassing Goodness; and maketh us
- to love all that He loveth, for His love, and to be well-pleased with
- Him and all His works. And when we fall, hastily He raiseth us by
- His lovely calling[1][2] and gracious touching. And when we be thus
- strengthened by His sweet working, then we with all our will choose
- Him, by His sweet grace, to be His servants and His lovers lastingly
- without end.
- And after this He suffereth some of us to fall more hard and more
- grievously than ever we did afore, as us thinketh. And then ween we
- (who be not all wise) that all were nought that we have begun. But this
- is not so. For it needeth us to fall, and it needeth us to see it.
- For if we never fell, we should not know how feeble and how wretched
- we are of our self, and also we should not fully know that marvellous
- love of our Maker. For we shall see verily in heaven, without end, that
- we have grievously sinned in this life, and notwithstanding this, we
- shall see that we were never hurt in His love, we were never the less
- of price in His sight. And by the assay of this falling we shall have
- an high, marvellous knowing of love in God, without end. For strong
- and marvellous is that love which may not, nor will not, be broken for
- trespass. And this is one understanding of [our] profit. Another is the
- lowness and meekness that we shall get by the sight of our falling:
- for thereby we shall highly be raised in heaven; to which raising
- we might[3] never have come without that meekness. And therefore it
- needeth us to see it; and if we see it not, though we fell it should
- not profit us. And commonly, first we fall and later we see it: and
- both of the Mercy of God.
- The mother may suffer the child to fall sometimes, and to be hurt in
- diverse manners for its own profit, but she may never suffer that any
- manner of peril come to the child, for love. And though our earthly
- mother may suffer her child to perish, our heavenly Mother, Jesus, may
- not suffer us that are His children to perish: for He is All-mighty,
- All-wisdom, and All-love; and so is none but He,--blessed may He be!
- But oftentimes when our falling and our wretchedness is shewed us, we
- are so sore adread, and so greatly ashamed of our self, that scarcely
- we find where we may hold us. But then willeth not our courteous Mother
- that we flee away, for Him were nothing lother. But He willeth then
- that we use the condition of a child: for when it is hurt, or adread,
- it runneth hastily to the mother for help, with all its might. So
- willeth He that we do, as a meek child saying thus: _My kind Mother, my
- Gracious Mother, my dearworthy Mother, have mercy on me: I have made
- myself foul and unlike to Thee, and I nor may nor can amend it but with
- thine help and grace_. And if we feel us not then eased forthwith, be
- we sure that He useth the condition of a wise mother. For if He see
- that it be more profit to us to mourn and to weep, He suffereth it,
- with ruth and pity, unto the best time, for love. And He willeth then
- that we use the property of a child, that evermore of nature trusteth
- to the love of the mother in weal and in woe.
- And He willeth that we take us mightily to the Faith of Holy Church and
- find there our dearworthy Mother, in solace of true Understanding, with
- all the blessed Common. For one single person may oftentimes be broken,
- as it seemeth to himself, but the whole Body of Holy Church was never
- broken, nor never shall be, without end. And therefore a sure thing it
- is, a good and a gracious, to will meekly and mightily to be fastened
- and oned to our Mother, Holy Church, that is, Christ Jesus. For the
- food of mercy that is His dearworthy blood and precious water is
- plenteous to make us fair and clean; the blessed wounds of our Saviour
- be open and enjoy to heal us; the sweet, gracious hands of our Mother
- be ready and diligently about us. For He in all this working useth the
- office of a kind nurse that hath nought else to do but to give heed
- about[4] the salvation of her child.
- It is His office to save us: it is His worship to do [for] us,[5] and
- it is His will [that] we know it: for He willeth that we love Him
- sweetly and trust in Him meekly and mightily. And this shewed He in
- these gracious words: _I keep thee full surely_.
- [1] "clepyng."
- [2] From the _Ancren Riwle_ (Camden Society's version, edited by J.
- Morton, D.D.), p. 231: "The sixth comfort is, that our Lord, when He
- suffereth us to be tempted, playeth with us, as the mother with her
- young darling: she flies from him, and hides herself, and lets him
- sit alone, and look anxiously around, and call _Dame! Dame!_ and weep
- awhile; and then she leapeth forth laughing, with outspread arms,
- and embraceth and kisseth him, and wipeth his eyes. In like manner,
- our Lord sometimes leaveth us alone, and withdraweth His grace, His
- comfort, and His support, so that we feel no delight in any good that
- we do, nor any satisfaction of heart; and yet, at that very time, our
- dear Father loveth us never the less, but doth it for the great love
- that He hath to us."
- p. 135: "The fourth reason why our Lord hideth Himself is, that thou
- mayest seek him more earnestly, and call, and weep after Him, as the
- little baby doth after his mother" ("ase deth thet lutel baban"--in
- another manuscript 'lite barn'--"efter his moder").
- [3] _i.e._ could.
- [4] "entend about."
- [5] S. de Cressy has here "to do it." This MS. seems to have: "to don
- us," possibly for to work at us, carry out our salvation to perfection,
- or, to take in hand for us, "to _do_ for us." See _The Paston Letters_,
- vol. ii. (Letter 472), _May_ 1463, "he prayid hym that he wold don for
- hym in hys mater, and gaf hym a reward; and withinne ryth short tym
- after, his mater sped."
- CHAPTER LXII
- "God is Very Father and Very Mother of Nature: and all natures that He
- hath made to flow out of Him to work His will shall be restored and
- brought again into Him by the salvation of Mankind through the working
- of Grace"
- For in that time He shewed our frailty and our fallings, our
- afflictings and our settings at nought,[1] our despites and our
- outcastings, and all our woe so far forth as methought it might befall
- in this life. And therewith He shewed His blessed Might, His blessed
- Wisdom, His blessed Love: that He keepeth us in this time as tenderly
- and as sweetly to His worship, and as surely to our salvation, as He
- doeth when we are in most solace and comfort. And thereto He raiseth us
- spiritually and highly in heaven, and turneth it all to His worship and
- to our joy, without end. For His love suffereth us never to lose time.
- And all this is of the Nature-Goodness of God, by the working of Grace.
- God is Nature[2] in His being: that is to say, that Goodness that is
- Nature, it is God. He is the ground, He is the substance, He is the
- same thing that is Nature-hood.[3] And He is very Father and very
- Mother of Nature: and all natures that He hath made to flow out of Him
- to work His will shall be restored and brought again into Him by the
- salvation of man through the working of Grace.
- For of all natures[4] that He hath set in diverse creatures by part,
- in man is all the whole; in fulness and in virtue, in fairness and
- in goodness, in royalty and nobleness, in all manner of majesty, of
- preciousness and worship. Here may we see that we are all beholden to
- God for nature, and we are all beholden to God for grace. Here may we
- see us needeth not greatly to seek far out to know sundry natures, but
- to Holy Church, unto our Mother's breast: that is to say, unto our own
- soul where our Lord dwelleth; and there shall we find all now in faith
- and in understanding. And afterward verily in Himself clearly, in bliss.
- But let no man nor woman take this singularly to himself: for it is
- not so, it is general: for it is [of] our precious Christ, and to Him
- was this fair nature adight[5] for the worship and nobility of man's
- making, and for the joy and the bliss of man's salvation; even as He
- saw, wist, and knew from without beginning.
- [1] "our brekyngs and our nowtyngs."
- [2] "kynde."
- [3] "kindhede."
- [4] "kyndes."
- [5] _i.e._ made ready, prepared, appointed.
- CHAPTER LXIII
- "As verily as sin is unclean, so verily is it unkind"--a disease or
- monstrous thing against nature. "He shall heal us full fair."
- Here may we see that we have verily of Nature to hate sin, and we have
- verily of Grace to hate sin. For Nature is all good and fair in itself,
- and Grace was sent out to save Nature and destroy sin, and bring again
- fair nature to the blessed point from whence it came: that is God; with
- more nobleness and worship by the virtuous working of Grace. For it
- shall be seen afore God by all His Holy in joy without end that Nature
- hath been assayed in the fire of tribulation and therein hath been
- found no flaw, no fault.[1] Thus are Nature and Grace of one accord:
- for Grace is God, as Nature is God: He is two in manner of working and
- one in love; and neither of these worketh without other: they be not
- disparted.
- And when we by Mercy of God and with His help accord us to Nature and
- Grace, we shall see verily that sin is in sooth viler and more painful
- than hell, without likeness: for it is contrary to our fair nature. For
- as verily as sin is unclean, so verily is it unnatural,[2] and thus an
- horrible thing to see for the loved[3] soul that would be all fair and
- shining in the sight of God, as Nature and Grace teacheth.
- Yet be we not adread of this, save inasmuch as dread may speed us:
- but meekly make we our moan to our dearworthy Mother, and He shall
- besprinkle us in His precious blood and make our soul full soft and
- full mild, and heal us full fair by process of time, right as it is
- most worship to Him and joy to us without end. And of this sweet fair
- working He shall never cease nor stint till all His dearworthy children
- be born and forthbrought. (And that shewed He where He shewed [me]
- understanding of the ghostly Thirst, that is the love-longing that
- shall last till Doomsday.)
- Thus in [our] Very Mother, Jesus, our life is grounded, in the
- foreseeing Wisdom of Himself from without beginning, with the high
- Might of the Father, the high sovereign Goodness of the Holy Ghost. And
- in the taking of our nature He quickened us; in His blessed dying upon
- the Cross He bare us to endless life; and from that time, and now, and
- evermore unto Doomsday, He feedeth us and furthereth us: even as that
- high sovereign Kindness of Motherhood, and as Kindly need of Childhood
- asketh.
- Fair and sweet is our Heavenly Mother in the sight of our souls;
- precious and lovely are the Gracious Children in the sight of our
- Heavenly Mother, with mildness and meekness, and all the fair virtues
- that belong to children in Nature. For of nature the Child despaireth
- not of the Mother's love, of nature the Child presumeth not of itself,
- of nature the Child loveth the Mother and each one of the other
- [children]. These are the fair virtues, with all other that be like,
- wherewith our Heavenly Mother is served and pleased.
- And I understood none higher stature in this life than Childhood,
- in feebleness and failing of might and of wit, unto the time that
- our Gracious Mother hath brought us up to our Father's Bliss.[4] And
- then shall it verily be known to us His meaning in those sweet words
- where He saith: _All shall be well: and thou shalt see, thyself, that
- all manner of things shall be well_. And then shall the Bliss of our
- Mother, in Christ, be new to begin in the Joys of our God: which new
- beginning shall last without end, new beginning.
- Thus I understood that all His blessed children which be come out of
- Him by Nature shall be brought again into Him by Grace.
- [1] "no lak (blame), no defaute."
- [2] "as sothly as sin is onclene as sothly is it onkinde."
- [3] S. de Cressy has "the loving soul."
- [4] "Our fader bliss."
- _THE FIFTEENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER LXIV
- "_Thou shalt come up above._" "A very fair creature, a little
- Child--nimble and lively, whiter than lily"
- Afore this time I had great longing and desire of God's gift to be
- delivered of this world and of this life. For oftentimes I beheld the
- woe that is here, and the weal and the bliss that is being there: (and
- if there had been no pain in this life but the absence of our Lord,
- methought it was some-time more than I might bear;) and this made me
- to mourn, and eagerly to long. And also from mine own wretchedness,
- sloth, and weakness, me liked not to live and to travail, as me fell to
- do.
- And to all this our courteous Lord answered for comfort and patience,
- and said these words: _Suddenly thou shalt be taken from all thy pain,
- from all thy sickness, from all thy distress[1] and from all thy woe.
- And thou shalt come up above and thou shalt have me to thy meed, and
- thou shalt be fulfilled of love and of bliss. And thou shalt never have
- no manner of pain, no manner of misliking, no wanting of will; but ever
- joy and bliss without end. What should it then aggrieve thee to suffer
- awhile, seeing that it is my will and my worship?_
- And in this word: _Suddenly thou shalt be taken_,--I saw that God
- rewardeth man for the patience that he hath in abiding God's will, and
- for his time, and [for] that man lengtheneth his patience over the
- time of his living. For not-knowing of his time of passing, that is a
- great profit: for if a man knew his time, he should not have patience
- over that time; but, as God willeth, while the soul is in the body it
- seemeth to itself that it is ever at the point to be taken. For all
- this life and this languor that we have here is but a point, and when
- we are taken suddenly out of pain into bliss then pain shall be nought.
- And in this time I saw a body lying on the earth, which body shewed
- heavy and horrible,[2] without shape and form, as it were a swollen
- quag of stinking mire.[3] And suddenly out of this body sprang a full
- fair creature, a little Child, fully shapen and formed, nimble[4] and
- lively, whiter than lily; which swiftly[5] glided up into heaven.
- And the swollenness of the body betokeneth great wretchedness of our
- deadly flesh, and the littleness of the Child betokeneth the cleanness
- of purity in the soul. And methought: _With this body abideth[6] no
- fairness of this Child, and on this Child dwelleth no foulness of this
- body_.
- It is more blissful that man be taken from pain, than that pain be
- taken from man;[7] for if pain be taken from us it may come again:
- therefore it is a sovereign comfort and blissful beholding in a loving
- soul that we shall be taken from pain. For in this behest[8] I saw
- a marvellous compassion that our Lord hath in us for our woe, and a
- courteous promising[9] of clear deliverance. For He willeth that we be
- comforted in the overpassing;[10] and _that_ He shewed in these words:
- _And thou shalt come up above, and thou shalt have me to thy meed, and
- thou shalt be fulfilled of joy and bliss_.
- It is God's will that we set the point of our thought in this blissful
- beholding as often as we may,--and as long time keep us therein with
- His grace; for this is a blessed contemplation to the soul that is led
- of God, and full greatly to His worship, for the time that it lasteth.
- And [when] we fall again to our heaviness, and spiritual blindness,
- and feeling of pains spiritual and bodily, by our frailty, it is God's
- will that we know that He hath not forgotten us. And so signifieth He
- in these words: _And thou shalt never more have pain; no manner of
- sickness, no manner of misliking, no wanting of will; but ever joy and
- bliss without end. What should it then aggrieve thee to suffer awhile,
- seeing it is my will and my worship?_
- It is God's will that we take His behests[11] and His comfortings as
- largely and as mightily as we may take them, and also He willeth that
- we take our abiding and our troubles[12] as lightly as we may take
- them, and set them at nought. For the more lightly we take them, and
- the less price we set on them, for love, the less pain we shall have
- in the feeling of them, and the more thanks and meed we shall have for
- them.
- [1] "disese."
- [2] "uggley."
- [3] a "bolned quave of styngand myre."
- [4] "swifie" = agile, quick.
- [5] "sharply."
- [6] "beleveth."
- [7] "full blissful ... mor than."
- [8] _i.e._ promise, proclamation.
- [9] "behoting."
- [10] _i.e._ the exceeding fulness of heavenly bliss.
- [11] See note 8 above.
- [12] "diseases" = discomforts, distresses.
- CHAPTER LXV
- "The Charity of God maketh in us such a unity that, when it is truly
- seen, no man can part himself from other"
- And thus I understood that what man or woman with firm will[1] chooseth
- God in this life, for love, he may be sure that he is loved without
- end: which endless love worketh in him that grace. For He willeth that
- we be as assured in hope of the bliss of heaven while we are here, as
- we shall be in sureness while we are there. And ever the more pleasance
- and joy that we take in this sureness, with reverence and meekness, the
- better pleaseth Him, as it was shewed. This reverence that I mean is
- a holy courteous dread of our Lord, to which meekness is united: and
- that is, that a creature seeth the Lord marvellous great, and itself
- marvellous little. For these virtues are had endlessly by the loved of
- God, and this may now be seen and felt in measure through the gracious
- presence of our Lord when it is [seen]: which presence in all things
- is most desired, for it worketh marvellous assuredness in true faith,
- and sure hope, by greatness of charity, in dread that is sweet and
- delectable.
- It is God's will that I see myself as much bound[2] to Him in love as
- if He had done for me all that He hath done; and thus should every soul
- think inwardly of its[3] Lover. That is to say, the Charity of God
- maketh in us such a unity that, when it is truly seen, no man can part
- himself from other. And thus ought our soul to think that God hath done
- for it[4] all that He hath done.
- And this sheweth He to make us to love Him and nought dread but Him.
- For it is His will that we perceive that all the might of our Enemy
- is taken into our Friend's hand; and therefore the soul that knoweth
- assuredly this, he[5] shall not dread but Him that he loveth. All
- other dread he[6] setteth among passions and bodily sickness and
- imaginations. And therefore though we be in so much pain, woe, and
- distress that it seemeth to us we can think [of] right nought but [of]
- that [which] we are in, or [of] that [which] we feel, [yet] as soon as
- we may, pass we lightly over, and set we it at nought. And why? For
- that God willeth we know [Him]; and if we know Him and love Him and
- reverently dread Him, we shall have peace, and be in great rest, and
- it shall be great pleasance to us, all that He doeth. And this shewed
- our Lord in these words: _What should it then aggrieve thee to suffer
- awhile, sith it is my will and my worship?_
- Now have I told you of Fifteen Revelations, as God vouchsafed to
- minister them to [my] mind, renewed by lightings and touchings, I hope
- of the same Spirit that shewed them all.
- Of which Fifteen Shewings the First began early in the morn, about
- the hour of four; and they lasted, shewing by process full fair and
- steadily, each following other, till it was nine of the day, overpassed.
- [1] "wilfully."
- [2] "bounden" = beholden.
- [3] "his."
- [4] "him."
- [5] _i.e._ the soul.
- [6] _i.e._ the soul.
- CHAPTER LXVI
- "All was closed, and I saw no more." "For the folly of feeling a little
- bodily pain I unwisely lost for the time the comfort of all this
- blessed Shewing of our Lord God"
- And after this the good Lord shewed the Sixteenth [Revelation] on the
- night following, as I shall tell after: which Sixteenth was conclusion
- and confirmation to all Fifteen.
- But first me behoveth to tell you as anent my feebleness, wretchedness
- and blindness.--I have said in the beginning: _And in this [moment] all
- my pain was suddenly taken from me:_ of which pain I had no grief nor
- distress as long as the Fifteen Shewings lasted following. And at the
- end all was close, and I saw no more. And soon I felt that I should
- live and languish;[1] and anon my sickness came again: first in my head
- with a sound and a din, and suddenly all my body was fulfilled with
- sickness like as it was afore. And I was as barren and as dry as [if]
- I never had comfort but little. And as a wretched creature I moaned
- and cried for feeling of my bodily pains and for failing of comfort,
- spiritual and bodily.
- Then came a Religious person to me and asked me how I fared. I said I
- had raved to-day. And he laughed loud and heartily.[2] And I said: _The
- Cross that stood afore my face, methought it bled fast_. And with this
- word the person that I spake to waxed all sober and marvelled. And anon
- I was sore ashamed and astonished for my recklessness, and I thought:
- _This man taketh in sober earnest[3] the least word that I might say_.
- Then said I no more thereof. And when I saw that he took it earnestly
- and with so great reverence, I wept, full greatly ashamed, and would
- have been shriven; but at that time I could tell it no priest, for I
- thought: _How should a priest believe me? I believe not our Lord God._
- This [Shewing] I believed verily for the time that I saw Him, and so
- was then my will and my meaning ever for to do without end; but as a
- fool I let it pass from my mind. Ah! lo, wretch that I am! this was a
- great sin, great unkindness, that I for folly of feeling of a little
- bodily pain, so unwisely lost for the time the comfort of all this
- blessed Shewing of our Lord God. Here may you see what I am of myself.
- But herein would our Courteous Lord not leave me. And I lay still till
- night, trusting in His mercy, and then I began to sleep. And in the
- sleep, at the beginning, methought the Fiend set him on my throat,
- putting forth a visage full near my face, like a young man's and it was
- long and wondrous lean: I saw never none such. The colour was red like
- the tilestone when it is new-burnt, with black spots therein like black
- freckles--fouler than the tilestone. His hair was red as rust, clipped
- in front,[4] with full locks hanging on the temples. He grinned on me
- with a malicious semblance, shewing white teeth: and so much methought
- it the more horrible. Body nor hands had he none shapely, but with his
- paws he held me in the throat, and would have strangled me, but he
- might not.
- This horrible Shewing was made [whilst I was] sleeping, and so was none
- other. But in all this time I trusted to be saved and kept by the mercy
- of God. And our Courteous Lord gave me grace to waken; and scarcely
- had I my life. The persons that were with me looked on me, and wet my
- temples, and my heart began to comfort. And anon a light smoke came
- in the door, with a great heat and a foul stench. I said: _Benedicite
- Domine! it is all on fire that is here!_ And I weened it had been a
- bodily fire that should have burnt us all to death. I asked them that
- were with me if they felt any stench. They said, Nay: they felt none. I
- said: _Blessed be God!_ For then wist I well it was the Fiend that was
- come to tempest me. And anon I took to that [which] our Lord had shewed
- me on the same day, with all the Faith of Holy Church (for I beheld it
- is both one), and fled thereto as to my comfort. And anon all vanished
- away, and I was brought to great rest and peace, without sickness of
- body or dread of conscience.
- [1] "langiren."
- [2] "inderly" = inwardly; so de Cressy; (Collins has "drolly").
- [3] "sadly" = solidly, soberly.
- [4] "evisid aforn with syde lokks hongyng on the thounys" (or thowngs,
- or thoungs). Bradley's _Dictionary of Middle English--thun(?)wange_ =
- temple, _evesed_ p. ple of _efesian_ = to clip the edges (_cf. eaves_).
- The Paris MS. however reads: "His hair was rede as rust not scoryd
- afore, with syde lockes hangyng on the thouwonges." S. de Cressy gives
- this as: "his hair was red as rust not scoured; afore with side locks
- hanging down in flakes."
- _THE SIXTEENTH REVELATION_
- CHAPTER LXVII
- "The place that Jesus taketh in our soul He shall never remove from,
- without end:--for in us His homliest home and His endless dwelling."
- "Our soul can never have rest in things that are beneath itself--yet
- may it not abide in the beholding of its self"
- And then our Lord opened my spiritual eye and shewed me my soul in
- midst of my heart. I saw the Soul so large as it were an endless
- world, and as it were a blissful kingdom. And by the conditions that
- I saw therein I understood that it is a worshipful City. In the midst
- of that City sitteth our Lord Jesus, God and Man, a fair Person of
- large stature, highest Bishop, most majestic[1] King, most worshipful
- Lord; and I saw Him clad majestically.[2] And worshipfully He sitteth
- in the Soul, even-right[3] in peace and rest. And the Godhead ruleth
- and sustaineth[4] heaven and earth and all that is,--sovereign Might,
- sovereign Wisdom, and sovereign Goodness,--[but] the place that Jesus
- taketh in _our Soul_ He shall never remove it, without end, as to my
- sight: for in us is His _homliest_ home and His _endless_ dwelling.[5]
- And in this [sight] He shewed the satisfying that He hath of the
- making of Man's Soul. For as well as the Father might make a creature,
- and as well as the Son could make a creature, so well would the Holy
- Ghost that Man's Soul were made: and so it was done. And therefore the
- blessed Trinity enjoyeth without end in the making of Man's Soul: for
- He saw from without beginning what should please Him without end. All
- thing that He hath made sheweth His Lordship,--as understanding was
- given at the same time by example of a creature that is to see great
- treasures and kingdoms belonging to a lord; and when it had seen all
- the nobleness beneath, then, marvelling, it was moved to seek above to
- the high place where the lord dwelleth, knowing, by reason, that his
- dwelling is in the worthiest place. And thus I understood in verity
- that our Soul may never have rest in things that are beneath itself.
- And when it cometh above all creatures into the Self, yet may it not
- abide in the beholding of its Self, but all the beholding is blissfully
- set in God that is the Maker dwelling therein. For in Man's Soul is His
- very dwelling; and the highest light and the brightest shining of the
- City is the glorious love of our Lord, as to my sight.
- And what may make us more to enjoy in God than to see in Him that He
- enjoyeth in the highest of all His works? For I saw in the same Shewing
- that if the blessed Trinity might have made Man's Soul any better,
- any fairer, any nobler than it was made, He should not have been
- full pleased with the making of Man's Soul. And He willeth that our
- hearts be mightily raised above the deepness of the earth and all vain
- sorrows, and rejoice[6] in Him.
- [1] "solemnest."
- [2] "solemnly" = in state.
- [3] _i.e._ straight-set.
- [4] "gemeth."
- [5] "woning."
- [6] "enjoyen."
- CHAPTER LXVIII
- "He said not: _Thou shalt not be tempested, thou shalt not be
- travailed, thou shalt not be afflicted_; but He said: _Thou shalt not
- be overcome_"
- This was a delectable Sight and a restful Shewing, that it is so
- _without end_. The beholding of this while we are here is full pleasing
- to God and full great profit to us; and the soul that thus beholdeth,
- it maketh it like to Him that is beheld, and oneth it in rest and peace
- by His grace. And this was a singular joy and bliss to me that I saw
- Him _sitting_: for the [quiet] secureness of sitting sheweth endless
- dwelling.
- And He gave me to know soothfastly that it was He that shewed me all
- afore. And when I had beheld this with heedfulness, then shewed our
- good Lord words[1] full meekly without voice and without opening of
- lips, right as He had [afore] done, and said full sweetly: _Wit it now
- well that it was no raving that thou sawest to-day: but take it and
- believe it, and keep thee therein, and comfort thee therewith, and
- trust thou thereto: and thou shalt not be overcome._
- These Last Words were said for believing and true sureness that it is
- our Lord Jesus that shewed me all. And right as in the first word that
- our good Lord shewed, signifying His blissful Passion,--_Herewith is
- the devil overcome_,--right so He said in the last word, with full
- true secureness, meaning us all: _Thou shalt not_ be overcome. And
- all this teaching in this true comfort, it is general, to all mine
- even-Christians, as it is aforesaid: and so is God's will.
- And this word: _Thou shalt not be overcome_, was said full clearly[2]
- and full mightily, for assuredness and comfort against all tribulations
- that may come. He said not: _Thou shalt not be tempested, thou shall
- not be travailed, thou shah not be afflicted_; but He said: _Thou shalt
- not be overcome_. God willeth that we take heed to these words, and
- that we be ever strong in sure trust, in weal and woe. For He loveth
- and enjoyeth us, and so willeth He that we love and enjoy Him and
- mightily trust in Him; and _all shall be well_.
- And soon after, all was close and I saw no more.
- [1] See lxx. "He shewed it all [the Revelation] again within in my
- soul."
- [2] "sharply" = decisively.
- CHAPTER LXIX
- "I was delivered from the Enemy by the virtue of Christ's Passion"
- After this the Fiend came again with his heat and with his stench,
- and gave me much ado,[1] the stench was so vile and so painful, and
- also dreadful and travailous. Also I heard a bodily jangling,[2] as if
- it had been of two persons; and both, to my thinking, jangled at one
- time as if they had holden a parliament with a great busy-ness; and
- all was soft muttering, so that I understood nought that they said.
- And all this was to stir me to despair, as methought,--seeming to
- me as [though] they mocked at praying of prayers[3] which are said
- boisterously with [the] mouth, failing [of] devout attending and wise
- diligence: the which we owe to God in our prayers.
- And our Lord God gave me grace mightily for to trust in Him, and to
- comfort my soul with bodily speech as I should have done to another
- person that had been travailed. Methought _that_ busy-ness[4] might
- not be likened to no bodily busy-ness. My bodily eye I set in the same
- Cross where I had been in comfort afore that time; my tongue with
- speech of Christ's Passion and rehearsing the Faith of Holy Church;
- and my heart to fasten on God with all the trust and the might. And I
- thought to myself, saying: _Thou hast now great busy-ness to keep thee
- in the Faith for that thou shouldst not be taken of the Enemy: wouldst
- thou now from this time evermore be so busy to keep thee from sin, this
- were a good and a sovereign occupation!_ For I thought in sooth were I
- safe from sin, I were full safe from all the fiends of hell and enemies
- of my soul.
- And thus he occupied me all that night, and on the morn till it was
- about prime day. And anon they were all gone, and all passed; and they
- left nothing but stench, and that lasted still awhile; and I scorned
- him.
- And thus was I delivered from him by the virtue of Christ's Passion:
- for _therewith is the Fiend overcome_, as our Lord Jesus Christ said
- afore.
- [1] "made me full besy."
- [2] _i.e._ gabbling.
- [3] "bidding of bedes."
- [4] see above, "made me full busy."
- CHAPTER LXX
- "Above the Faith is no goodness kept in this life, as to my sight,
- and beneath the Faith is no help of soul; but _in_ the Faith, _there_
- willeth the Lord that we keep us"
- In all this blessed Shewing our good Lord gave understanding that the
- Sight should pass: which blessed Shewing the Faith keepeth, with His
- own good will and His grace. For He left with me neither sign nor token
- whereby I might know it, but He left with me His own blessed word in
- true understanding, bidding me full mightily that I should believe it.
- And so I do,--Blessed may He be!--I believe that He is our Saviour that
- shewed it, and that it is the Faith that He shewed: and therefore I
- believe it, rejoicing. And thereto I am bounden by all His own meaning,
- with the next words that follow: _Keep thee therein, and comfort thee
- therewith, and trust thou thereto_.
- Thus I am bounden to keep it in my faith. For on the same day that it
- was shewed, what time that the Sight was passed, as a wretch I forsook
- it, and openly I said that I had raved. Then our Lord Jesus of His
- mercy would not let it perish, but He showed it all again _within in
- my soul_[1] with more fulness, with the blessed light of His precious
- love: saying these words full mightily and full meekly: _Wit it now
- well: it was no raving that thou sawest this day_. As if He had said:
- _For that the Sight was passed from thee, thou losedst it and hadst
- not skill to keep[2] it. But wit[3] it now_; that is to say, _now that
- thou seest it_. This was said not only for that same time, but also to
- set thereupon the ground of my faith when He saith anon following: _But
- take it, believe it, and keep thee therein and comfort thee therewith
- and trust thou thereto; and thou shalt not be overcome_.
- In these six words that follow (_Take it_--[etc.]) His meaning is to
- fasten it faithfully in our heart: for He willeth that it dwell with
- us in faith to our life's end, and after in fulness of joy, desiring
- that we have ever steadfast trust in His blissful behest--knowing His
- Goodness.
- For our faith is contraried in diverse manners by our own blindness,
- and our spiritual enemy, within and without; and therefore our precious
- Lover helpeth us with spiritual sight and true teaching in sundry
- manners within and without, whereby that we may know Him. And therefore
- in whatsoever manner He teacheth us, He willeth that we perceive Him
- wisely, receive Him sweetly, and keep us in Him faithfully. For above
- the Faith is no goodness kept in this life, as to my sight, and beneath
- the Faith is no help of soul; but in the Faith, there willeth the Lord
- that we keep us. For we have by His goodness and His own working to
- keep us in the Faith; and by His sufferance through ghostly enmity we
- are assayed in the Faith and made mighty. For if our faith had none
- enmity, it should deserve no meed, according to the understanding that
- I have in all our Lord's teaching.
- [1] see ch. lxviii.
- [2] "couthest not."
- [3] _i.e._ learn, perceive, know for certainty by the conviction of
- reason and consciousness--grasp once for all the truth beheld.
- CHAPTER LXXI
- "Three manners of looking seen in our Lord's Countenance"
- Glad and joyous and sweet is the Blissful lovely Cheer[1] of our Lord
- to our souls. For He [be]holdeth[2] us ever, living in love-longing:
- and He willeth that _our_ soul be in glad cheer to Him, to give Him His
- meed. And thus, I hope, with His grace He hath [drawn], and more shall
- draw, the Outer Cheer to the Inner Cheer, and make us all one with Him,
- and each of us with other, in true lasting joy that is Jesus.
- I have signifying of Three manners of Cheer of our Lord. The first is
- Cheer of Passion, as He shewed while He was here in this life, dying.
- Though this [manner of] Beholding be mournful and troubled, yet it is
- glad and joyous: for He is God.--The second manner of Cheer is [of]
- Ruth and Compassion: and this sheweth He, with sureness of Keeping,
- to all His lovers that betake them[3] to His mercy. The third is the
- Blissful Cheer, as it shall be without end: and this was [shewed]
- oftenest and longest-continued.
- And thus in the time of our pain and our woe He sheweth us Cheer of
- His Passion and His Cross, helping us to bear it by His own blessed
- virtue. And in the time of our sinning He sheweth to us Cheer of Ruth
- and Pity, mightily keeping us and defending us against all our enemies.
- And these be the common Cheer which He sheweth to us in this life;
- therewith mingling the third: and that is His Blissful Cheer, like,
- in part, as it shall be in Heaven. And that [shewing is] by gracious
- touching and sweet lighting of the spiritual life, whereby that we are
- kept in sure faith, hope, and charity, with contrition and devotion,
- and also with contemplation and all manner of true solace and sweet
- comforts.
- [1] "Cher," in earlier chapters rendered by _manner of Countenance_ or
- _Regard_.
- [2] The word of the MS. might be: "he havith" (possibly "draweth"), or
- "behadith" or "behavith." There is a verb "bi-hawen" _to behold_--in
- other forms bihabben, bi-halden--; and "behave" had the meaning of to
- _manage, govern_. Elsewhere in the MS. to _regard_, if not _to fix the
- eyes upon_, is expressed (_e.g._ in xxxix.) simply by _to "holden"_
- without the prefix. S. de Cressy has here "he beheld."
- [3] "that have to"; S. de Cressy, "have need to."
- CHAPTER LXXII
- "As long as we be meddling with any part of sin we shall never see
- clearly the Blissful Countenance of our Lord"
- But now behoveth me to tell in what manner I saw sin deadly in the
- creatures which shall not die for sin, but live in the joy of God
- without end.
- I saw that two contrary things should never be together in one place.
- The most contrary that are, is the highest bliss and the deepest pain.
- The highest bliss that is, is to have Him in clarity of endless life,
- Him verily seeing, Him sweetly feeling, all-perfectly having in fulness
- of joy. And thus was the Blissful Cheer of our Lord shewed in Pity:[1]
- in which Shewing I saw that sin is most contrary,--so far forth that
- as long as we be meddling with any part of sin, we shall never see
- clearly the Blissful Cheer of our Lord. And the more horrible and
- grievous that our sins be, the deeper are we for that time from this
- blissful sight. And therefore it seemeth to us oftentimes as we were in
- peril of death, in a part of hell, for the sorrow and pain that the sin
- is to us. And thus we are dead for the time from the very sight of our
- blissful life. But in all this I saw soothfastly that we be not dead in
- the sight of God, nor He passeth never from us. But He shall never have
- His full bliss in us till we have our full bliss in Him, verily seeing
- His fair Blissful Cheer. For we are ordained thereto in nature, and get
- thereto by grace. Thus I saw how sin is deadly for a short time in the
- blessed creatures of endless life.
- And ever the more clearly that the soul seeth this Blissful Cheer
- by grace of loving, the more it longeth to see it in fulness. For
- notwithstanding that our Lord God dwelleth in us and is here with us,
- and albeit He claspeth us and encloseth[2] us for tender love that He
- may never leave[3] us, and is more near to us than tongue can tell or
- heart can think, yet may we never stint of moaning nor of weeping nor
- of longing till when we see Him clearly in His Blissful Countenance.
- For in that precious blissful sight there may no woe abide, nor any
- weal fail.[4]
- And in this I saw matter of mirth and matter of moaning: matter of
- mirth: for our Lord, our Maker, is so near to us, and in us, and we
- in Him, by sureness of keeping through His great goodness; matter of
- moaning: for our ghostly eye is so blind and we be so borne down by
- weight of our mortal flesh and darkness of sin, that we may not see
- our Lord God clearly in His fair Blissful Cheer. No; and because of
- this dimness[5] scarsely we can believe and trust His great love and
- our sureness[6] of keeping. And therefore it is that I say we may
- never stint of moaning nor of weeping. This "weeping" meaneth not all
- in pouring out of tears by our bodily eye, but also hath more ghostly
- understanding. For the kindly desire of our soul is so great and so
- unmeasurable, that if there were given us for our solace and for our
- comfort all the noble things that ever God made in heaven and in earth,
- and we saw not the fair Blissful Cheer[7] of Himself, yet we should
- not stint of moaning nor ghostly weeping, that is to say, of painful
- longing, till when we [should] see verily the fair Blissful Cheer of
- our Maker. And if we were in all the pain that heart can think and
- tongue may tell, if we might in that time see His fair Blissful Cheer,
- all this pain should not aggrieve us.
- Thus is that Blissful Sight [the] end of all manner of pain to the
- loving soul, and the fulfilling of all manner of joy and bliss. And
- that shewed He in the high, marvellous words where He said: _I it am
- that is highest; I it am that is lowest; I it am that is all_.
- It belongeth to us to have three manner of knowings: the first is that
- we know our Lord God; the second is that we know our self: what we are
- by Him, in Nature and Grace; the third is that we know meekly what our
- self is anent our sin and feebleness. And for these three was all the
- Shewing made, as to mine understanding.
- [1] That is: in the Shewing of Pity (Rev. ii) ch. x., in which it was
- shewed _darkly_. S. de Cressy has "in _party_" = _part_, but the word
- seems to be "_pite_" = _pity_.
- [2] halsith; beclosith.
- [3] levyn; tellen; thyn ken; stint; see.
- [4] "abiden, ne no wele fallen."
- [5] "myrkehede, unethes we can leven and trowen."
- [6] "sekirnes."
- [7] The words "Blissful Cheer" cannot be rendered by the more beautiful
- and familiar BLESSED COUNTENANCE, and even "_Blissful_ Countenance"
- might fail to bring out the reference to _one Aspect_ of the Divine
- Face, one part of the threefold Truth.
- CHAPTER LXXIII
- "Two manners of sickness that we have: impatience, or sloth;--despair,
- or mistrustful dread"
- All the blessed teaching of our Lord was shewed by three parts: that
- is to say, by bodily sight, and by word formed in mine understanding,
- and by spiritual sight. For the bodily sight, I have said as I saw, as
- truly as I can; and for the words, I have said them right as our Lord
- shewed them to me; and for the spiritual sight, I have told some deal,
- but I may never fully tell it: and therefore of this sight I am stirred
- to say more, as God will give me grace.
- God shewed two manners of sickness that we have: the one is impatience,
- or sloth: for we bear our travail and our pains heavily; the other is
- despair, or doubtful dread, which I shall speak of after. _Generally_,
- He shewed _sin_, wherein that all is comprehended, but in special He
- shewed only these two. And these two are they that most do travail
- and tempest us, according to that which our Lord shewed me; and of
- them He would have us be amended. I speak of such men and women as for
- God's love hate sin and dispose themselves to do God's will: then by
- our spiritual blindness and bodily heaviness we are most inclining to
- these. And therefore it is God's will that they be known, for then we
- shall refuse them as we do other sins.
- And for help of this, full meekly our Lord shewed the patience that He
- had in His Hard Passion; and also the joying and the satisfying that
- He hath of that Passion, for love. And this He shewed in example that
- we should gladly and wisely bear our pains, for that is great pleasing
- to Him and endless profit to us. And the cause why we are travailed
- with them is for lack in knowing[1] of Love. Though the three Persons
- in the Trinity[2] be all even[3] in Itself, the soul[4] took most
- understanding in Love; yea, and He willeth that in all things we have
- our beholding and our enjoying in Love. And of this knowing are we most
- blind. For some of us believe that God is Almighty and may do all,
- and that He is All-Wisdom and can do all; but that He is All-Love and
- will do all, there we stop short.[5] And this not-knowing it is, that
- hindereth most God's lovers, as to my sight.
- For when we begin to hate sin, and amend us by the ordinance of Holy
- Church, yet there dwelleth a dread that letteth us, because of the
- beholding of our self and of our sins afore done. And some of us
- because of our every-daily sins: for we hold not our Covenants, nor
- keep we our cleanness that our Lord setteth us in, but fall oftentimes
- into so much wretchedness that shame it is to see it. And the beholding
- of this maketh us so sorry and so heavy, that scarsely we can find any
- comfort.
- And this dread we take sometime for a meekness, but it is a foul
- blindness and a weakness.[6] And we cannot despise it as we do another
- sin, that we know [as sin]: for it cometh [subtly] of Enmity, and it
- is against truth. For it is God's will that of all the properties of
- the blissful Trinity, we should have most sureness and comfort in Love:
- for Love maketh Might and Wisdom full meek to us. For right as by the
- courtesy of God He forgiveth our sin after the time that we repent us,
- right so willeth He that _we_ forgive our sin, as anent our unskilful
- heaviness and our doubtful dreads.
- [1] "for _unknowing_."
- [2] seen as Might, Wisdom, Love.
- [3] _i.e._ equal.
- [4] _i.e._ Julian (xiii., xxiv., xlvi.).
- [5] "astynten."
- [6] S. de Cressy: "a wickedness"; but the MS. word is "waykenes."
- CHAPTER LXXIV
- "There is no dread that fully pleaseth God in us but reverent dread"
- For I understand [that there be] four manner of dreads. One is the
- dread of an affright that cometh to a man suddenly by frailty. This
- dread doeth good, for it helpeth to purge man, as doeth bodily sickness
- or such other pain as is not sin. For all such pains help man if
- they be patiently taken. The second is dread of pain, whereby man is
- stirred and wakened from sleep of sin. He is not able for the time to
- perceive the soft comfort of the Holy Ghost, till he have understanding
- of this dread of pain, of bodily death, of spiritual enemies; and
- this dread stirreth us to seek comfort and mercy of God, and thus
- this dread helpeth us,[1] and enableth us to have contrition by the
- blissful touching of the Holy Ghost. The third is doubtful dread.
- Doubtful dread in as much as it draweth to despair, God will have it
- turned in us into love by the knowing of love: that is to say, that
- the bitterness of doubt be turned into the sweetness of natural love
- by grace. For it may never please our Lord that His servants doubt in
- His Goodness. The fourth is reverent dread: for there is no dread that
- fully pleaseth God in us but reverent dread. And that is full soft, for
- the more it is had, the less it is felt for sweetness of love.
- Love and Dread are brethren, and they are rooted in us by the Goodness
- of our Maker, and they shall never be taken from us without end. We
- have of nature to love and we have of grace to love: and we have of
- nature to dread and we have of grace to dread. It belongeth to the
- Lordship and to the Fatherhood to be dreaded, as it belongeth to the
- Goodness to be loved: and it belongeth to us that are His servants and
- His children to dread Him for Lordship and Fatherhood, as it belongeth
- to us to love Him for Goodness.
- And though this reverent-dread and love be not parted asunder, yet they
- are not both one, but they are two in property and in working, and
- neither of them may be had without other. Therefore I am sure, he that
- loveth, he dreadeth, though that he feel it but a little.
- All dreads other than reverent dread that are proffered to us, though
- they come under the colour of holiness yet are not so true, and hereby
- may they be known asunder.--That dread that maketh us hastily to flee
- from all that is not good and fall into our Lord's breast, as the Child
- into the Mother's bosom,[2] with all our intent and with all our mind,
- knowing our feebleness and our great need, knowing His everlasting
- goodness and His blissful love, only seeking to Him for salvation,
- cleaving to [Him] with sure trust: that dread that bringeth us into
- this working, it is natural,[3] gracious, good and true. And all that
- is contrary to this, either it is wrong, or it is mingled with wrong.
- Then is this the remedy, to know them both and refuse the wrong.
- For the natural property of dread which we have in this life by the
- gracious working of the Holy Ghost, the same shall be in heaven afore
- God, gentle, courteous, and full delectable. And thus we shall in
- love be homely and near to God, and we shall in dread be gentle and
- courteous to God: and both alike equal.
- Desire we of our Lord God to dread Him reverently, to love Him meekly,
- to trust in Him mightily; for when we dread Him reverently and love
- Him meekly our trust is never in vain. For the more that we trust, and
- the more mightily, the more we please and worship our Lord that we
- trust in. And if we fail in this reverent dread and meek love (as God
- forbid we should!), our trust shall soon be misruled for the time. And
- therefore it needeth us much to pray our Lord of grace that we may have
- this reverent dread and meek love, of His gift, in heart and in work.
- For without this, no man may please God.
- [1] Here the transcriber of the B. Mus. MS. repeats (by mistake, no
- doubt) "to seek," etc. S. de Cressy: "helpeth us as an entry."
- [2] S. de Cressy: "Mothers Arme," but MS. (B.M.) "Moder barme."
- [3] "kinde."
- CHAPTER LXXV
- "We shall see verily the cause of all things that He hath done; and
- evermore we shall see the cause of all things that He hath permitted"
- I saw that God can do all that we need. And these three that I shall
- speak of we need: love, longing, pity. Pity in love keepeth us in the
- time of our need; and longing in the same love draweth us up into
- Heaven. For the Thirst of God is to have the general Man unto Him: in
- which thirst He hath drawn His Holy that be now in bliss; and getting
- His lively members, ever He draweth and drinketh, and yet He thirsteth
- and longeth.
- I saw three manners of longing in God, and all to one end; of which we
- have the same in us, and by the same virtue and for the same end.
- The first is, that He longeth to teach us to know Him and love Him
- evermore, as it is convenient and speedful to us. The second is, that
- He longeth to have us up to His Bliss, as souls are when they are taken
- out of pain into Heaven. The third is to fulfill us in bliss; and
- that shall be on the Last Day, fulfilled ever to last. For I saw, as
- it is known in our Faith, that the pain and the sorrow shall be ended
- to all that shall be saved. And not only we shall receive the same
- bliss that souls afore have had in heaven, but also we shall receive
- a new [bliss], which plenteously shall be flowing out of God into us
- and shall fulfill us; and these be the goods which He hath ordained
- to give us from without beginning. These goods are treasured and hid
- in Himself; for unto that time [no] Creature is mighty nor worthy to
- receive them.
- In this [fulfilling] we shall see verily the cause of all things that
- He hath done; and evermore we shall see the cause of all things that He
- hath suffered.[1] And the bliss and the fulfilling shall be so deep and
- so high that, for wonder and marvel, all creatures shall have to God so
- great reverent dread, overpassing that which hath been seen and felt
- before, that the pillars of heaven shall tremble and quake. But this
- manner of trembling and dread shall have no pain; but it belongeth to
- the worthy might of God thus to be beholden by His creatures, in great
- dread trembling and quaking for meekness of joy, marvelling at the
- greatness of God the Maker and at the littleness of all that is made.
- For the beholding of this maketh the creature marvellously meek and
- mild.
- Wherefore God willeth--and also it belongeth to us, both in nature
- and grace--that we wit and know of this, desiring this sight and this
- working; for it leadeth us in right way, and keepeth us in true life,
- and oneth us to God. And as good as God is, so great He is; and as
- much as it belongeth to His goodness to be loved, so much it belongeth
- to His greatness to be dreaded. For this reverent dread is the fair
- courtesy that is in Heaven afore God's face. And as much as He shall
- then be known and loved overpassing that He is now, in so much He shall
- be dreaded overpassing that He is now. Wherefore it behoveth needs to
- be that all Heaven and earth shall tremble and quake when the pillars
- shall tremble and quake.
- [1] _i.e._ permitted; "all that is good our Lord doeth, and that which
- is evil our Lord suffereth," xxxv.
- CHAPTER LXXVI
- "The soul that beholdeth the fair nature of our Lord Jesus, it hateth
- no hell but sin"
- I speak but little of reverent dread, for I hope it may be seen in this
- matter aforesaid. But well I wot our Lord shewed me no souls but those
- that dread Him. For well I wot the soul that truly taketh the teaching
- of the Holy Ghost, it hateth more sin for vileness and horribleness
- than it doth all the pain that is in hell. For the soul that beholdeth
- the fair nature[1] of our Lord Jesus, it hateth no hell but sin, as to
- my sight. And therefore it is God's will that we know sin, and pray
- busily and travail earnestly and seek teaching meekly that we fall not
- blindly therein; and if we fall, that we rise readily. For it is the
- most pain that the soul may have, to turn from God any time by sin.
- The soul that willeth to be in rest when [an] other man's sin cometh
- to mind, he shall flee it as the pain of hell, seeking unto God for
- remedy, for help against it. For the beholding of other man's sins,
- it maketh as it were a thick mist afore the eyes of the soul, and we
- cannot, for the time, see the fairness of God, but if we may behold
- them with contrition with him, with compassion on him, and with holy
- desire to God for him. For without this it harmeth[2] and tempesteth
- and hindereth the soul that beholdeth them. For this I understood in
- the Shewing of Compassion.
- In this blissful Shewing of our Lord I have understanding of two
- contrary things: the one is the most wisdom that any creature may
- do in this life, the other is the most folly. The most wisdom is
- for a creature to do after the will and counsel of his highest
- sovereign Friend. This blessed Friend is Jesus, and it is His will
- and His counsel that we hold us with Him, and fasten us to Him
- homely--evermore, in what state soever that we be; for whether-so that
- we be foul or clean, we are all one in His loving. For weal nor for woe
- He willeth never we flee from Him. But because of the changeability
- that we are in, in our self, we fall often into sin. Then we have this
- [doubting dread] by the stirring of our enemy and by our own folly and
- blindness: for they say thus: _Thou seest well thou art a wretched
- creature, a sinner, and also unfaithful. For thou keepest not the
- Command[3]; thou dost promise oftentimes our Lord that thou shalt do
- better, and anon after, thou fallest again into the same, especially
- into sloth and losing of time._ (For that is the beginning of sin, as
- to my sight,--and especially to the creatures that have given them to
- serve our Lord with inward beholding of His blessed Goodness.) And this
- maketh us adread to appear afore our courteous Lord. Thus is it our
- enemy that would put us aback[4] with his false dread, [by reason] of
- our wretchedness, through pain that he threateth us with. For it is his
- meaning to make us so heavy and so weary in this, that we should let
- out of mind the fair, Blissful Beholding of our Everlasting Friend.
- [1] "kindness."
- [2] "noyith."
- [3] S. de Cressy--"thy Covenant."
- [4] "on bakke."
- CHAPTER LXXVII
- "Accuse not thyself overmuch, deeming that thy tribulation and thy woe
- is all thy fault." "All thy living is penance profitable." "In the
- remedy He willeth that we rejoice"
- Our good Lord shewed the enmity of the Fiend: in which Shewing I
- understood that all that is contrary to love and peace is of the Fiend
- and of his part. And we have, of our feebleness and our folly, to fall;
- and we have, of mercy and grace of the Holy Ghost, to rise to more
- joy. And if our enemy aught winneth of us by our falling, (for it is
- his pleasure,[1]) he loseth manifold more in our rising by charity and
- meekness. And this glorious rising, it is to him so great sorrow and
- pain for the hate that he hath to our soul, that he burneth continually
- in envy. And all this sorrow that he would make us to have, it shall
- turn to himself. And for this it was that our Lord scorned him, and [it
- was] this [that] made me mightily to laugh.
- Then is this the remedy, that we be aware of our wretchedness and flee
- to our Lord: for ever the more needy that we be, the more speedful it
- is to us to draw nigh to Him.[2] And let us say thus in our thinking:
- _I know well I have a shrewd pain; but our Lord is All-Mighty and
- may punish me mightily; and He is All-Wisdom and can punish me
- discerningly; and He is All-Goodness and loveth me full tenderly_. And
- in this beholding it is necessary for us to abide; for it is a lovely
- meekness of a sinful soul, wrought by mercy and grace of the Holy
- Ghost, when we willingly and gladly take the scourge and chastening of
- our Lord that Himself will give us. And it shall be full tender and
- full easy, if that we will only hold us satisfied with Him and with all
- His works.
- For the penance that man taketh of himself was not shewed me: that is
- to say, it was not shewed specified. But specially and highly and with
- full lovely manner of look was it shewed that we shall meekly bear and
- suffer the penance that God Himself giveth us, with mind in His blessed
- Passion. (For when we have mind in His blessed Passion, with pity and
- love, then we suffer with Him like as His friends did that saw it. And
- this was shewed in the Thirteenth Shewing, near the beginning, where it
- speaketh of Pity.) For He saith: _Accuse not [thy]self overdone much,
- deeming that thy tribulation and thy woe is all for thy fault; for I
- will not that thou be heavy or sorrowful indiscreetly. For I tell thee,
- howsoever thou do, thou shalt have woe. And therefore I will that thou
- wisely know thy penance; and [thou] shalt see in truth that all thy
- living is penance profitable._
- This place is prison and this life is penance, and in the remedy He
- willeth that we rejoice. The remedy is that our Lord is with us,
- keeping and leading into the fulness of joy. For this is an endless joy
- to us in our Lord's signifying, that He that shall be our bliss when we
- are there, He is our keeper while we are here. Our way and our heaven
- is true love and sure trust; and of this He gave understanding in all
- [the Shewings] and especially in the Shewing of the Passion where He
- made me mightily to choose Him for my heaven.[3]
- Flee we to our Lord and we shall be comforted, touch we Him and we
- shall be made clean, cleave we to Him and we shall be sure,[4] and safe
- from all manner of peril.
- For our courteous Lord willeth that we should be as homely with Him as
- heart may think or soul may desire. But [let us] beware that we take
- not so recklessly this homeliness as to leave courtesy. For our Lord
- Himself is sovereign homeliness, and as homely as He is, so courteous
- He is: for He is very courteous. And the blessed creatures that shall
- be in heaven with Him without end, He will have them like to Himself in
- all things. And to be like our Lord perfectly, it is our very salvation
- and our full bliss.
- And if we wot not how we shall do all this, desire we of our Lord and
- He shall teach us: for it is His own good-pleasure and His worship;
- blessed may He be!
- [1] S. de Cressy, "likeness"; Collins, "business." The word may be
- "Lifenes" = lefness, pleasure; lif = lef = lief = (Morris' _Specimens
- of Early English_) pleasing, dear.
- [2] "neyghen him."
- [3] ch. xix.
- [4] "sekir."
- CHAPTER LXXVIII
- "Though we be highly lifted up into contemplation by the special gift
- of our Lord, yet it is needful to us to have knowledge and sight of our
- sin and our feebleness"
- Our Lord of His mercy sheweth us our sin and our feebleness by the
- sweet gracious light of Himself; for our sin is so vile and so horrible
- that He of His courtesy will not shew it to us but by the light of
- His grace and mercy. Of four things therefore it is His will that we
- have knowing: the first is, that He is our Ground from whom we have
- all our life and our being. The second is, that He keepeth us mightily
- and mercifully in the time that we are in our sin and among all our
- enemies, that are full fell upon us; and so much we are in the more
- peril for [that] we give them occasion thereto, and know not our own
- need.[1] The third is, how courteously He keepeth us, and _maketh us to
- know_ that we go amiss. The fourth is, how steadfastly He abideth us
- and changeth no regard:[2] for He willeth that we be turned [again],
- and oned to Him in love as He is to us.
- And thus by this gracious knowing we may see our sin profitably without
- despair. For truly we need to see it, and by the sight we shall be
- made ashamed of our self and brought down as anent our pride and
- presumption; for it behoveth us verily to see that of ourselves we are
- right nought but sin and wretchedness. And thus by the sight of the
- less that our Lord sheweth us, the more is reckoned[3] which we see
- not. For He of His courtesy measureth the sight to us; for it is so
- vile and so horrible that we should not endure to see it as it is. And
- by this meek knowing after this manner, through contrition and grace
- we shall be broken from all that is not our Lord. And then shall our
- blessed Saviour perfectly heal us, and one us to Him.
- This breaking and this healing our Lord meaneth for the general Man.
- For he that is highest and nearest with God, he may see himself
- sinful--and needeth to--with me; and I that am the least and lowest
- that shall be saved, I may be comforted with him that is highest: so
- hath our Lord oned us in charity; [as] where He shewed me that I should
- sin.[4]
- And for joy that I had in beholding of Him I attended not readily
- to that Shewing, and our courteous Lord stopped there and would not
- further teach me till that He gave me grace and will to attend.
- And hereby was I learned that though we be highly lifted up into
- contemplation by the special gift of our Lord, yet it is needful to us
- therewith to have knowing and sight of our sin and our feebleness. For
- without this knowing we may not have true meekness, and without this
- [meekness] we may not be saved.
- And afterward, also, I saw that we may not have this knowing from our
- self; nor from none of all our spiritual enemies: for they will us not
- so great good. For if it were by their will, we should not see it until
- our ending day. Then be we greatly beholden[5] to God for that He will
- Himself, for love, shew it to us in time of mercy and grace.
- [1] See ch. xxxix. p. 81.
- [2] "chere" = manner of looking on us; mien.
- [3] S. de Cressy: "wasted," but the indistinct word of the Brit. Mus.
- MS. is probably "_castid_," for "cast," or "_casten_" = conjectured.
- [4] ch. xxxvii.
- [5] _i.e._ in gratitude.
- CHAPTER LXXIX
- "I was taught that I should see mine own sin, and not other men's sin
- except it may be for comfort and help of my fellow-Christians" (lxxvi.)
- Also I had of this [Revelation] more understanding. In that He shewed
- me that I should sin, I took it nakedly to mine own singular person,
- for I was none otherwise shewed at that time. But by the high,
- gracious comfort of our Lord that followed after, I saw that His
- meaning was for the general Man: that is to say, All-Man; which is
- sinful and shall be unto the last day. Of which Man I am a member, as
- I hope, by the mercy of God. For the blessed comfort that I saw, it is
- large enough for us all. And here was I learned that I should see mine
- own sin, and not other men's sins but if it may be for comfort and help
- of mine even-Christians.
- And also in this same Shewing where I saw that I should sin, there was
- I learned to be in dread for unsureness of myself. For I wot not how I
- shall fall, nor I know not the measure nor the greatness of sin; for
- that would I have wist, with dread, and thereto I had none answer.
- Also our courteous Lord in the same time He shewed full surely and
- mightily the endlessness and the unchangeability of His love; and,
- afterward, that by His great goodness and His grace inwardly keeping,
- the love of Him and our soul shall never be disparted in two, without
- end.[1]
- And thus in this dread I have matter of meekness that saveth me from
- presumption, and in the blessed Shewing of Love I have matter of true
- comfort and of joy that saveth me from despair. All this homely Shewing
- of our courteous Lord, it is a lovely lesson and a sweet, gracious
- teaching of Himself in comforting of our soul. For He willeth that
- we [should] know by the sweetness and homely loving of Him, that all
- that we see or feel, within or without, that is contrary to this is of
- the enemy and not of God. And thus;--If we be stirred to be the more
- reckless of our living or of the keeping of our hearts because that we
- have knowing of this plenteous love, then need we greatly to beware.
- For this stirring, if it come, is untrue; and greatly we ought to hate
- it, for it all hath no likeness of God's will. And when that we be
- fallen, by frailty or blindness, then our courteous Lord toucheth us
- and stirreth us and calleth us; and then willeth He that we see our
- wretchedness and meekly be aware of it.[2] But He willeth not that
- we abide thus, nor He willeth not that we busy us greatly about our
- accusing, nor He willeth not that we be wretched over our self;[3] but
- He willeth that we hastily turn ourselves unto Him. For He standeth all
- aloof and abideth us sorrowfully and mournfully till when we come, and
- hath haste to have us to Him. For we are His joy and His delight, and
- He is our salve and our life.
- When I say He standeth all alone, I leave the speaking of the blessed
- Company of heaven, and speak of His office and His working here on
- earth,--upon the condition of the Shewing.
- [1] See xxxvii., xl., xlviii., lxi., lxxxii.
- [2] "ben it aknowen." S. de Cressy, "be it a knowen."
- [3] MS. "wretchful of our selfe." S. de Cressy, "wretchful on our self."
- CHAPTER LXXX
- "Himself is nearest and meekest, highest and lowest, and doeth all."
- "Love suffereth never to be without Pity"
- By three things man standeth in this life; by which three God is
- worshipped, and we be speeded,[1] kept and saved.
- The first is, use of man's Reason natural; the second is, common
- teaching of Holy Church; the third is, inward gracious working of the
- Holy Ghost. And these three be all of one God: God is the ground of our
- natural reason; and God, the teaching of Holy Church; and God is the
- Holy Ghost. And all be sundry gifts to which He willeth that we have
- great regard, and attend us thereto. For these work in us continually
- all together; and these be great things. Of which great things He
- willeth that we have knowing here as it were in an A.B.C., that is to
- say, that we have a little knowing; whereof we shall have fulness in
- Heaven. And that is for to speed us.
- We know in our Faith that God alone took our nature, and none but He;
- and furthermore that Christ alone did all the works that belong to
- our salvation, and none but He; and right so He alone doeth now the
- last end: that is to say, He dwelleth here with us, and ruleth us
- and governeth us in this living, and bringeth us to His bliss. And
- this shall He do as long as any soul is in earth that shall come to
- heaven,--and so far forth that if there were no such soul but one,
- He should be withal alone till He had brought him up to His bliss. I
- believe and understand the ministration of angels, as clerks tell us:
- but it was not shewed me. For Himself is nearest and meekest, highest
- and lowest, and doeth all. And not only all that we need, but also He
- doeth all that is worshipful, to our joy in heaven.
- And where I say that He abideth sorrowfully and moaning, it meaneth
- all the true feeling that _we_ have in our self, in contrition and
- compassion, and all sorrowing and moaning that we are not oned with our
- Lord. And all such that is speedful, it is Christ in us. And though
- some of us feel it seldom, it passeth never from Christ till what time
- He hath brought us out of all our woe. For love suffereth never to be
- without pity. And what time that we fall into sin and leave the mind of
- Him and the keeping of our own soul, then keepeth Christ alone all the
- charge; and thus standeth He sorrowfully and moaning.
- Then belongeth it to us for reverence and kindness to turn us hastily
- to our Lord and leave Him not alone. He is here alone with us all: that
- is to say, only for us He is here. And what time I am strange to Him by
- sin, despair or sloth, then I let my Lord stand alone, in as much as it
- is in me. And thus it fareth with us all which be sinners. But though
- it be so that we do thus oftentimes, His Goodness suffereth us never to
- be alone, but lastingly He is with us, and tenderly He excuseth us, and
- ever shieldeth us from blame in His sight.
- [1] _i.e._ helped onwards.
- CHAPTER LXXXI
- "God seeth all our living a penance: for nature-longing of our love is
- to Him a lasting penance in us." "His love maketh Him to long"
- Our Good Lord shewed Himself in diverse manners both in heaven and in
- earth, but I saw Him take no place save in man's soul.
- He shewed Himself in earth in the sweet Incarnation and in His blessed
- Passion. And in other manner He shewed Himself in earth [as in the
- Revelation] where I say: _I saw God in a Point_.[1] And in another
- manner He shewed Himself in earth thus as it were in pilgrimage: that
- is to say, He is here with us, leading us, and shall be till when He
- hath brought us all to His bliss in heaven. He shewed Himself diverse
- times reigning, as it is aforesaid; but principally in man's soul. He
- hath taken there His resting-place and His worshipful City: out of
- which worshipful See He shall never rise nor remove without end.
- Marvellous and stately[2] is the place where the Lord dwelleth,
- and therefore He willeth that we readily answer to[3] His gracious
- touching, more rejoicing in His whole love than sorrowing in our often
- fallings. For it is the most worship to Him of anything that we may
- do, that we live gladly and merrily, for His love, in our penance.
- For He beholdeth us so tenderly that He seeth all our living [here] a
- penance: for nature's longing in us is to Him aye-lasting penance in
- us[4]: which penance He worketh in us and mercifully He helpeth us to
- bear it. For His love maketh _Him_ to long [for us]; His wisdom and His
- truth with His rightfulness maketh _Him_ to suffer us [to be] here: and
- in this same manner [of longing and abiding] He willeth to see it in
- us. For this is our natural penance,--and the highest, as to my sight.
- For this penance goeth[5] never from us till what time that we be
- fulfilled, when we shall have Him to our meed. And therefore He willeth
- that we set our hearts in the Overpassing[6]: that is to say, from the
- pain that we feel into the bliss that we trust.
- [1] ch. xi.
- [2] "solemne."
- [3] "entenden to" = turn our attention, respond to.
- [4] or, at in S. de Cressy, "For kind longing in us to him is a lasting
- penance in us."
- [5] "cometh."
- [6] The exceeding Bliss. "Our light affliction, which is but for a
- moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight of
- glory."--2 Cor. iv. 17.
- CHAPTER LXXXII
- "In falling and in rising we are ever preciously kept in one Love"
- But here shewed our courteous Lord the moaning and the mourning of
- the soul, signifying thus: _I know well thou wilt live for my love,
- joyously and gladly suffering all the penance that may come to thee;
- but in as much as thou livest not without sin thou wouldest suffer, for
- my love, all the woe, all the tribulation and distress that might come
- to thee. And it is sooth.[1] But be not greatly aggrieved with sin that
- falleth to thee against thy will._
- And here I understood that [which was shewed] that the Lord beholdeth
- the servant with pity and not with blame.[2] For this passing life
- asketh[3] not to live all without blame and sin. He loveth us
- endlessly, and we sin customably, and He sheweth us full mildly, and
- then we sorrow and mourn discreetly, turning us unto the beholding
- of His mercy, cleaving to His love and goodness, seeing that He is
- our medicine, perceiving that we do nought but sin. And thus by the
- meekness we get by the sight of our sin, faithfully knowing His
- everlasting love, Him thanking and praising, we please Him:--_I love
- thee, and thou lovest me, and our love shall not be disparted in two:
- for thy profit I suffer [these things to come]._ And all this was
- shewed in spiritual understanding, saying these blessed words: _I keep
- thee full surely_.
- And by the great desire that I saw in our blessed Lord that we shall
- live in this manner,--that is to say, in longing and enjoying, as all
- this lesson of love sheweth,--thereby I understood that that which is
- contrarious to us is not of Him but of enmity; and He willeth that we
- know it by the sweet gracious light of His kind love. If any such lover
- be in earth which is continually kept from falling, I know it not:
- for it was not shewed me. But this was shewed: that in falling and in
- rising we are ever preciously kept in one Love. For in the Beholding of
- God we fall not, and in the beholding of self we stand not; and both
- these [manners of beholding] be sooth as to my sight. But the Beholding
- of our Lord God is the highest soothness.[4] Then are we greatly bound
- to God[5] [for] that He willeth in this living to shew us this high
- soothness. And I understood that while we be in this life it is full
- speedful to us that we see both these at once. For the higher Beholding
- keepeth us in spiritual solace and true enjoying in God; [and] that
- other that is the lower Beholding keepeth us in dread and maketh us
- ashamed of ourself. But our good Lord willeth ever that we hold us much
- more in the Beholding of the higher, and [yet] leave not the knowing of
- the lower, unto the time that we be brought up above, where we shall
- have our Lord Jesus unto our meed and be fulfilled of joy and bliss
- without end.
- [1] _i.e._ truth. See xxvii., "It is sooth that sin it cause of all
- this pain."
- [2] ch. li.
- [3] _i.e._ "demandeth not that we live."
- [4] sooth, soothness: _i.e._ truth, trueness. "Both these ben soth, as
- to my syte. But the beholdyng of our Lord God is the heyest sothnes."
- See chaps. xlv., liii., etc., the two "Deemings": the Beholding by God
- of the higher Self and the Beholding by man of the lower self.
- [5] in gratitude, obligation.
- CHAPTER LXXXIII
- "Life, Love, and Light"
- I had, in part, touching, sight, and feeling in three properties of
- God, in which the strength and effect of all the Revelation standeth:
- and they were seen in every Shewing, and most properly in the Twelfth,
- where it saith oftentimes: [_It is I._] The properties are these: Life,
- Love, and Light.[1] In life is marvellous homeliness, and in love is
- gentle courtesy, and in light is endless Nature-hood. These properties
- were in one Goodness: unto which Goodness my Reason would be oned, and
- cleave to it with all its might.
- I beheld with reverent dread, and highly marvelling in the sight
- and in the feeling of the sweet accord, that our Reason is in God;
- understanding that it is the highest gift that we have received; and it
- is grounded in nature.
- Our faith is a light by nature coming of our endless Day, that is our
- Father, God. In which light our Mother, Christ, and our good Lord, the
- Holy Ghost, leadeth us in this passing life. This light is measured
- discreetly, needfully standing to us in the night. The light is cause
- of our life; the night is cause of our pain and of all our woe: in
- which we earn meed and thanks of God. For we, with mercy and grace,
- steadfastly know and believe our light, going therein wisely and
- mightily.
- And at the end of woe, suddenly our eyes shall be opened, and in
- clearness of light our sight shall be full: which light is God, our
- Maker and Holy Ghost, in Christ Jesus our Saviour.
- Thus I saw and understood that our faith is our light in our night:
- which light is God, our endless Day.
- [1] _Cf._ chs. lxxxv. and lxxxvi. These words might be (as Life,
- Light, and Love) for the Trinity of _Might_ ("the Father willeth"),
- _Wisdom_ ("the Son worketh"), _Love_ ("the Holy Ghost confirmeth"):
- _one Goodness_: or as it is sometimes denoted, the Trinity of
- _Might, Wisdom, Goodness: one Love_. But here the thought seems to
- be centred in _Light_ as the manifestation of Being (of _Kyndhede_ =
- relationships, correspondences of nature): of the Triune Divine Light
- which in Man is corresponding Reason, Faith, Charity: Charity keeping
- man, while here, in Faith and Hope; Charity leading him from and
- through and into the Eternal Divine Love.
- CHAPTER LXXXIV
- "Charity"
- The light is Charity, and the measuring of this light is done to us
- profitably by the wisdom of God. For neither is the light so large that
- we may see our blissful Day, nor is it shut from us; but it is such a
- light in which we may live meedfully, with travail deserving[1] the
- endless worship of God. And this was seen in the Sixth Shewing where He
- said: _I thank thee of thy service and of thy travail_. Thus Charity
- keepeth us in Faith and Hope, and Hope leadeth us in Charity. And in
- the end all shall be Charity.
- I had three manners of understanding of this light, Charity. The first
- is Charity unmade; the second is Charity made; the third is Charity
- given. Charity unmade is God; Charity made is our soul in God; Charity
- given is virtue. And that is a precious gift of working in which we
- love God, for Himself; and ourselves, in God; and that which God
- loveth, for God.
- [1] _i.e._ earning the endless praise.
- CHAPTER LXXXV
- "Lord, blessed mayest Thou be, for it is thus: it is well"
- And in this sight I marvelled highly. For notwithstanding our simple
- living and our blindness here, yet endlessly our courteous Lord
- beholdeth us in this working, rejoicing; and of all things, we may
- please Him best wisely and truly to believe, and to enjoy with Him and
- in Him. For as verily as we shall be in the bliss of God without end,
- Him praising and thanking, so verily we have been in the foresight of
- God, loved and known in His endless purpose from without beginning. In
- which unbegun love He made us; and in the same love He keepeth us and
- never suffereth us to be hurt [in manner] by which our bliss might be
- lost. And therefore when the Doom is given and we be all brought up
- above, then shall we clearly see in God the secret things which be now
- hid to us. Then shall none of us be stirred to say in any wise: _Lord,
- if it had been thus, then it had been full well_; but we shall say
- all with one voice: _Lord, blessed mayst thou be, for it is thus: it
- is well; and now see we verily that all-thing is done as it was then
- ordained before that anything was made._
- CHAPTER LXXXVI
- "Love was our Lord's Meaning"
- This book is begun by God's gift and His grace, but it is not yet
- performed, as to my sight.
- For Charity pray we all; [together] with _God's_ working, thanking,
- trusting, enjoying. For thus will our good Lord be prayed to, as by the
- understanding that I took of all His own meaning and of the sweet words
- where He saith full merrily: _I am the Ground of thy beseeching_. For
- truly I saw and understood in our Lord's meaning that He shewed it for
- that He willeth to have it known more than it is: in which knowing He
- will give us grace to love to Him and cleave to Him. For He beholdeth
- His heavenly treasure with so great love on earth that He willeth to
- give us more light and solace in heavenly joy, in drawing to Him of our
- hearts, for sorrow and darkness[1] which we are in.
- And from that time that it was shewed I desired oftentimes to learn[2]
- what was our Lord's meaning. And fifteen years after, and more, I was
- answered in ghostly understanding, saying thus: _Wouldst thou learn[3]
- thy Lord's meaning in this thing? Learn it well: Love was His meaning.
- Who shewed it thee? Love. What shewed He thee? Love. Wherefore shewed
- it He? For Love. Hold thee therein and thou shalt learn and know more
- in the same. But thou shalt never know nor learn therein other thing
- without end._ Thus was I learned[4] that Love was our Lord's meaning.
- And I saw full surely that ere God made us He loved us; which love was
- never slacked, nor ever shall be. And in this love He hath done all His
- works; and in this love He hath made all things profitable to us; and
- in this love our life is everlasting. In our making we had beginning;
- but the love wherein He made us was in Him from without beginning: in
- which love we have our beginning. And all this shall we see in God,
- without end.
- [1] "merkness" = dimness.
- [2] "witten" = to see clearly.
- [3] "witten" = to see clearly.
- [4] "lerid."
- POSTSCRIPT BY A SCRIBE
- [The Sloane MS. is entitled "Revelations to one who could not read a
- Letter, Anno Dom. 1373," and each chapter is headed by a few lines
- denoting its contents. These titles are in language similar to that of
- the text, and are probably the work of an early scribe. No doubt it
- is the same scribe who after the last sentence of the book adds the
- aspiration:] _Which Jesus mot grant us_
- _Amen._
- [And to him also may be assigned this conclusion:--]
- Thus endeth the Revelation of Love of the blissid Trinite shewid by
- our Savior Christ Jesu for our endles comfort and solace and also to
- enjoyen in him in this passand journey of this life.
- _Amen Jesu Amen_
- I pray Almyty God that this booke com not but to the hands of them
- that will be his faithfull lovers, and to those that will submitt
- them to the faith of holy Church, and obey the holesom understondying
- and teching of the men that be of vertuous life, sadde Age and sound
- lering: ffor this Revelation is hey Divinitye and hey wisdom, wherfore
- it may not dwelle with him that is thrall to synne and to the Devill.
- And beware thou take not on thing after thy affection and liking, and
- leve another: for that is the condition of an heretique. But take every
- thing with other. And, trewly understonden, All is according to holy
- Scripture and groundid in the same. And _that_ Jesus, our very love,
- light and truth, shall shew to all clen soulis that with mekeness aske
- profe reverently this wisdom of hym.
- And thou to whom this boke shall come, thank heyley and hertily our
- Saviour Christ Jesu that he made these shewings and revelations, for
- the, and to the, of his endles love, mercy and goodnes for thine and
- our save guide, to conduct to everlastying bliss: _the which Jesus mot
- grant us._ AMEN.
- GLOSSARY
- _Adight_ = prepared, ordained.
- _Adventure_ = chance, hazard.
- _After_ = according to.
- _All thing_ = with the verb singular--kept here chiefly to express
- _all_, the _whole_ of things related to each other, though often, as in
- the original, meaning simply _every, each_. In Early and Middle English
- _thing_ had no _s_ in the plural.
- _And_ had sometimes the force of _but_, and once or twice in the MS. it
- is used in its sense of _if_, or of _and though_, or _and when_.
- _Asseth, asyeth, asyeth-making_ = satisfaction; fulfilment
- (theologically used).
- _Asketh_ = requireth, demandeth.
- _Avisement_ = consideration; observation with self-consulting.
- _Beclosed_ = enclosed.
- _Behest_ = promise: a thing proclaimed; afterwards, command.
- _Behold in_ = behold. _Beholding_ = manner of regarding things.
- _Belongeth to, behoveth_ = is incumbent, befitteth.
- _Blissful_ = used sometimes as _blessed_.
- _Bodily_ = perceived by any of the bodily senses, effected by material
- agency.
- _Braste_ = burst.
- _Busyness_ = the state of being busy; _great busyness_ = much ado.
- _But if_ = unless, save.
- _Cause_ = reason, end, object.
- _Cheer_ = expression of countenance shewing sorrow or gladness; mien.
- _Close_ = shut away; hid, or partially hid.
- _Come from_ = go from.
- _Common: the Blessed Common_ = the Christian Community.
- _Contrarious_ = perverse. Various other forms are used from to
- _contrary_, to oppose.
- _Could_ and _can_ refer to knowledge and practical skill, ability.
- _Courteous_ = gently considerate and fair; reverentially ceremonious;
- Gracious.
- _Deadly_ = mortal.
- _Dearworthy_ = precious; beloved and honoured.
- _Depart_ = dispart, part.
- _Deserve_ = earn.
- _Disease_ = distress, trouble, want of case.
- _Doom, deeming_ = judgment. _Doomsman_ = priestly confessor.
- _Enjoy in_ = enjoy; rejoice in.
- _Entend_ = attend.
- _Enter_ = to lead in.
- _Even_ = equal; _even-like; even-right_ = straight, straight-facing.
- _Even-Christian_ (_even-cristen_, sing. or pl.) = fellow-Christian.
- _Hamlet_ V. i., "And the more the pity that great folk have countenance
- in this world to drown or hang themselves more than their even
- Christian."
- _Faithfully_ = trustfully.
- _For that_ = because.
- _Fulfilled of_ = filled full with. _Fulfilling_ = fulfilment, Perfect
- Bliss.
- _Garland_ = crown.
- _Generally_ = relating to things or people in general, not "in special."
- _Grante mercy_ = ("grand merci") great thanks.
- _Have to_ = betake one's self to.
- _Hastily_ = quickly, soon.
- _Homely_ = intimate, simple, as of one at home.
- _Honest_ = fair, seemly.
- _If_ = that (chap. xxxii., "Thou shalt see--if all--shall be well" Acts
- xxvi. 8).
- _Impropriated (impropried) to_ = appropriated to.
- _Indifferent_ (to thy sight, chap. li.) = indistinct.
- _Intellect_ = understanding, that which is to be understood, inference.
- xiii.
- _Intent_ = attention.
- _Kind_ = nature, race, birth, species; natural, etc.; _kindly_ = as by
- birth and kinship, natural, filial, gentle, genial, human and humane.
- _Known_ = made known.
- _Languor_ = to languish.
- _Learn_ = teach.
- _Let_, "_letten_" = hinder (letted).
- _Like (it liketh him, meliketh)_ = to suit, be similar to the desire,
- to be pleasing (Amos iv. 5). _Liking_ = pleasure, pleasance.
- _Likeness_ ("without any likeness") = comparison.
- _May, might,_ often for _can_ and _could_ of modern usage.
- _Mean_ = to think, say, signify, intend; to have in one's mind.
- _Mean, means_ = medium, intermediary thing, or person, or communication.
- _Mind_ = feeling, memory, sympathetic perception or realisation.
- _Mischief_ = hurt, injury, harm.
- _Mights_ = powers, faculties.
- _Morrow_ = morning.
- _Moaning_ = sorrowing.
- _Naked_ = simple, single, plain, by itself.
- _Needs_ = of need; it _behoveth needs_ = is incumbent through necessity.
- _Oweth_ = ought, is bound by duty or debt.
- _One_ (oned, oneing) = to make one, unite.
- _Over_ = upper.
- _Overpassing_ = exceeding; the _overpassing_ = the Restoration,
- the heavenly Fulfilment of the Company of souls made _more_ than
- conquerors; the Supernal Blessedness.
- _Pass_ = to die.
- _Passing_ = surpassingly.
- _Regard, in regard of_ = in respect of, comparison with. _Regard_ =
- look, sight.
- _Ready_ = prepared; _readily_ = quickly.
- _Sad_ = Sober ("sad votaress," Milton, _Comus_), originally "firm"
- ("rype and sad corage," Chaucer: _The Clerkes Tale_, 164).
- _Say_ = tell.
- _Skilfully_ = discerningly, with practical knowledge and ability.
- _Slade_ = a steep, hollow place; a ravine.
- _So far forth_ = to such a measure.
- _Solemn_ = festal, as of a yearly feast, stately, ceremonial.
- _Sooth_ = very reality, that which _is; soothly, soothfastly_.
- _Speed_ = prospering, furtherance, profit.
- _Stint_ ("stinten") = to cease.
- _Stirring_ ("stering") = moving, prompting, motion.
- _Substantial_ and _sensual_, relating respectively (in the writer's
- psychology) to the _Substance_ or higher self, and the soul inhabiting
- the body on earth, called by her the _Sensualite_, and in chap. lvii.
- _the sensual soul; cf._ Genesis i. 27, with ii. 7.
- _Tarry_ = to vex, delay.
- _Touch_ (a) = an instant. _Touching_ = influence.
- _Trow_ = believe.
- _Unknowing_ = ignorance; _unmade_ = not made.
- _Ween_ = suppose, expect, think.
- _Will; He will_ = He willeth that. _Wilfully_ = with firm will,
- resolutely.
- _Wit_ to know by perception, to experience, find, learn. Knowledge
- knows: _Wisdom wits_.
- _Worship_ = honour, praise, glory.
- _Wretch_ = a poor, a mean creature of no account.
- [THE END.]
- End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Revelations of Divine Love Recorded by
- Julian, Anchoress at Norwich, by Julian
- *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE ***
- ***** This file should be named 52958-8.txt or 52958-8.zip *****
- This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/9/5/52958/
- Produced by Clare Graham & Marc D'Hooghe at Free Literature
- (online soon in an extended version, alo linking to free
- sources for education worldwide ... MOOC's, educational
- materials,...) Images generously made available by the
- Internet Archive.
- Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
- be renamed.
- Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
- law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
- so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
- States without permission and without paying copyright
- royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
- of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
- and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
- specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
- eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
- for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
- performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
- away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
- not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
- trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
- START: FULL LICENSE
- THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
- PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
- To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
- distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
- (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
- Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
- Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
- and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
- (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
- the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
- destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
- possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
- Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
- by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
- person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
- 1.E.8.
- 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
- used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
- agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
- things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
- paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
- agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
- 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
- Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
- of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
- works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
- States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
- United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
- claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
- displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
- all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
- that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
- free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
- works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
- Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
- comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
- same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
- you share it without charge with others.
- 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
- what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
- in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
- check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
- agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
- distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
- other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
- representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
- country outside the United States.
- 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
- 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
- immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
- prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
- on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
- phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
- performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
- 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
- derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
- contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
- copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
- the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
- redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
- either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
- obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
- trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
- with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
- must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
- additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
- will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
- posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
- beginning of this work.
- 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
- work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
- 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
- electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
- prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
- active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm License.
- 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
- compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
- any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
- to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
- other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
- version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
- (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
- to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
- of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
- Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
- full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
- performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
- unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
- access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- provided that
- * You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
- * You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
- * You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- * You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
- are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
- from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
- Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
- trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
- 1.F.
- 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
- effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
- works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
- Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
- contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
- or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
- other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
- cannot be read by your equipment.
- 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
- of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
- fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
- LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
- PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
- TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
- LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
- INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGE.
- 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
- defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
- receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
- written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
- received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
- with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
- with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
- lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
- or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
- opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
- the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
- without further opportunities to fix the problem.
- 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
- in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
- OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
- 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
- warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
- damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
- violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
- agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
- limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
- unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
- remaining provisions.
- 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
- trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
- providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
- accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
- production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
- including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
- the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
- or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
- additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
- Defect you cause.
- Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
- Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
- electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
- computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
- exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
- from people in all walks of life.
- Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
- assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
- goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
- remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
- and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
- generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
- Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
- www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
- 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
- state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
- Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
- number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
- U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
- The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
- mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
- volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
- locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
- Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
- date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
- official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
- For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
- Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
- spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
- increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
- freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
- array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
- ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
- status with the IRS.
- The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
- charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
- States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
- considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
- with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
- where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
- DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
- state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
- While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
- have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
- against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
- approach us with offers to donate.
- International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
- any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
- outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
- Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
- methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
- ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
- donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
- Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
- Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
- freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
- distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
- volunteer support.
- Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
- editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
- the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
- necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
- edition.
- Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
- facility: www.gutenberg.org
- This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
- including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
- subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.